Selected quad for the lemma: nature_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
nature_n distinct_a person_n property_n 2,539 5 9.4838 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A60953 Tritheism charged upon Dr. Sherlock's new notion of the Trinity and the charge made good in an answer to the defense of the said notion against the Animadversions upon Dr. Sherlock's book, entituled, A vindication of the holy and ever-blessed Trinity, &c. / by a divine of the Church of England. South, Robert, 1634-1716. 1695 (1695) Wing S4744; ESTC R10469 205,944 342

There are 36 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

inexi_v in_o one_o another_o and_o last_o only_o distinct_a in_o their_o subsistence_n but_o by_o no_o mean_n separate_a or_o divide_v let_v all_o this_o i_o say_v be_v suppose_v on_o the_o part_n of_o the_o eternal_a father_n and_o son_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n let_v we_o suppose_v two_o other_o person_n viz._n the_o prototype_n and_o his_o live_a image_n and_o these_o without_o any_o necessary_a coexistence_n with_o one_o another_o and_o the_o latter_a not_o have_v it_o be_v sole_a dependence_n upon_o the_o former_a and_o both_o of_o they_o such_o as_o can_v mutual_o exist_v in_o one_o another_o and_o withal_o be_v not_o only_o distinct_a in_o their_o respective_a subsistence_n but_o also_o actual_o separate_v and_o local_o divide_v from_o each_o other_o now_o i_o say_v when_o we_o have_v collate_v all_o these_o disparity_n together_o must_v not_o that_o comparison_n think_v we_o give_v we_o a_o bless_a edify_n representation_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o eternal_a father_n and_o son_n in_o the_o same_o numerical_a divine_a nature_n when_o one_o side_n of_o the_o comparison_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o explication_n of_o that_o it_o be_v a_o direct_a irreconcilable_a contradiction_n to_o the_o other_o but_o as_o we_o first_o wave_v the_o consideration_n of_o those_o monstrous_a absurdity_n that_o be_v involve_v in_o this_o notion_n of_o a_o man_n and_o his_o live_a image_n with_o reference_n to_o the_o eternal_a father_n and_o son_n so_o let_v we_o at_o present_a wave_n the_o forementioned_a gross_a disparity_n between_o they_o also_o yet_o still_o this_o notion_n be_v utter_o unfit_a to_o give_v we_o any_o explication_n of_o the_o trinity_n as_o be_v every_o whit_n as_o difficult_a if_o not_o more_o difficult_a for_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n to_o conceive_v than_o the_o trinity_n itself_o for_o the_o grand_a difficulty_n here_o be_v to_o conceive_v how_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a nature_n can_v be_v in_o several_a distinct_a though_o intimate_o unite_v person_n and_o the_o thing_n which_o this_o author_n will_v explain_v this_o by_o be_v a_o man_n and_o his_o image_n where_o he_o suppose_v one_o and_o the_o same_o numerical_o subsist_v human_a nature_n to_o be_v in_o two_o local_o distinct_a and_o separately_z subsist_v person_n but_o now_o in_o this_o case_n be_v it_o not_o much_o more_o conceivable_a that_o a_o infinite_a nature_n who_o boundless_a perfection_n reach_v to_o more_o way_n of_o subsist_v than_o one_o shall_v subsist_v in_o several_a person_n and_o those_o only_a distinct_a than_o that_o a_o particular_a finite_a nature_n which_o can_v have_v but_o one_o subsistence_n shall_v subsist_v in_o two_o person_n and_o those_o also_o local_o distant_a and_o separate_v from_o one_o another_o i_o appeal_v i_o say_v to_o any_o man_n of_o judgement_n alive_a whether_o this_o be_v not_o the_o great_a and_o more_o inexplicable_a difficulty_n of_o the_o two_o for_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n find_v a_o utter_a contradiction_n in_o make_v a_o finite_a be_v exist_v at_o on●e_n in_o two_o distant_a place_n or_o vbi_n but_o in_o the_o former_a though_o it_o find_v a_o insuperable_a difficulty_n yet_o it_o can_v allege_v no_o contradiction_n and_o therefore_o i_o say_v again_o that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o high_a degree_n senseless_a and_o irrational_a to_o assign_v that_o as_o a_o explication_n of_o a_o thing_n which_o be_v more_o difficult_a perplex_a and_o inconceivable_a than_o the_o thing_n itself_o which_o it_o pretend_v to_o explain_v which_o yet_o be_v the_o case_n here_o of_o a_o man_n and_o his_o live_a image_n as_o the_o notion_n of_o it_o have_v be_v state_v and_o apply_v to_o the_o present_a subject_n so_o that_o this_o wonderful_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o a_o clear_a idea_n of_o the_o trinity_n than_o ever_o the_o world_n have_v before_o have_v these_o three_o excellent_a qualification_n to_o recommend_v it_o 1._o that_o it_o suppose_v and_o build_v upon_o several_a thing_n utter_o contradictious_a and_o impossible_a 2._o that_o it_o make_v one_o thing_n the_o representation_n of_o another_o between_o which_o yet_o as_o to_o the_o very_a particular_n wherein_o the_o resemblance_n shall_v be_v there_o be_v the_o high_a and_o utmost_a disparity_n and_o three_o and_o last_o that_o it_o offer_v to_o explain_v a_o thing_n difficult_a obscure_a and_o by_o human_a reason_n not_o comprehensible_a by_o another_o thing_n which_o be_v ten_o time_n more_o so_o so_o that_o if_o this_o must_v be_v the_o lot_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o sit_v down_o and_o see_v her_o most_o holy_a religion_n practise_v upon_o by_o such_o wretched_a innovation_n as_o can_v tend_v only_o to_o ridicule_n and_o expose_v the_o chief_a article_n of_o it_o to_o the_o scorn_n of_o arian_n and_o socinian_o and_o all_o this_o under_o pretence_n of_o explain_v they_o i_o can_v but_o say_v god_n deliver_v our_o poor_a church_n from_o such_o explainer_n and_o our_o creed_n from_o such_o explication_n and_o as_o i_o hearty_o commiserate_v the_o unhappy_a state_n of_o that_o so_o i_o real_o pity_v this_o bold_a man_n himself_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v thus_o suffer_v to_o go_v on_o vent_v his_o scandalous_a heterodoxy_n without_o find_v either_o friend_n to_o counsel_n or_o superior_n to_o control_v he_o nevertheless_o shall_v we_o with_o a_o non_fw-la obstante_fw-la to_o what_o have_v be_v say_v comply_v with_o this_o man_n be_v absurd_a notion_n so_o far_o as_o to_o allow_v his_o prototype_n and_o his_o live_a image_n to_o bear_v such_o a_o peculiar_a resemblance_n to_o the_o eternal_a father_n and_o son_n as_o he_o pretend_v but_o can_v never_o prove_v they_o to_o do_v yet_o how_o do_v this_o any_o way_n explain_v or_o give_v we_o as_o he_o call_v it_o any_o idea_n of_o the_o trinity_n for_o be_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n the_o trinity_n without_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o how_o do_v this_o prototype_n and_o live_a image_n set_v forth_o to_o we_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o both_o of_o they_o when_o it_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o three_o person_n at_o all_o the_o son_n indeed_o issue_v from_o the_o father_n in_o the_o way_n of_o knowledge_n by_o a_o reflex_n act_n thereof_o express_v his_o infinite_a nature_n and_o perfection_n whereupon_o as_o it_o be_v the_o property_n both_o of_o knowledge_n and_o of_o a_o image_n to_o represent_v some_o thing_n so_o if_o this_o prototype_n and_o live_a image_n can_v be_v of_o any_o use_n to_o help_v our_o notion_n of_o the_o eternal_a generation_n it_o must_v be_v by_o its_o represent_v quality_n but_o now_o the_o holy_a ghost_n issue_v from_o the_o father_n and_o son_n per_fw-la modum_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la by_o a_o eternal_a incomprehensible_a act_n of_o love_n stream_v from_o they_o both_o and_o the_o property_n of_o love_n we_o know_v be_v not_o to_o represent_v as_o knowledge_n do_v but_o to_o unite_v to_o the_o object_n know_v and_o here_o i_o pray_v what_o do_v the_o live_a image_n do_v towards_o the_o set_n forth_o of_o this_o why_o our_o author_n indeed_o make_v the_o prototype_n one_o person_n and_o his_o live_a image_n another_o but_o do_v these_o two_o by_o a_o act_n of_o love_n or_o any_o other_o act_n proceed_v joint_o from_o both_o produce_v a_o three_o person_n if_o not_o what_o idea_n of_o a_o trinity_n can_v be_v draw_v from_o these_o two_o but_o if_o this_o author_n will_v say_v as_o he_o say_v thing_n no_o less_o absurd_a that_o the_o prototype_n and_o his_o live_a image_n do_v produce_v some_o certain_a three_o person_n distinct_a from_o both_o of_o they_o and_o so_o answer_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o trinity_n i_o desire_v he_o to_o tell_v the_o world_n what_o kind_n of_o thing_n this_o three_o person_n be_v and_o by_o what_o name_v it_o be_v to_o be_v call_v and_o express_v for_o i_o never_o yet_o hear_v or_o read_v of_o any_o such_o nor_o be_o i_o so_o much_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d man_n as_o to_o fetch_v it_o from_o my_o own_o invention_n but_o beside_o all_o the_o forego_n absurdity_n it_o be_v worth_a observe_n what_o a_o notable_a cast_n of_o his_o ignorance_n he_o give_v we_o about_o emanation_n def._n p._n 28._o l._n 10._o and_o in_o order_n to_o it_o i_o think_v fit_a to_o show_v what_o a_o emanation_n and_o a_o cause_n by_o emanation_n be_v now_o a_o cause_n or_o principle_n by_o 〈◊〉_d emanation_n be_v that_o which_o produce_v its_o effect_n or_o term_n without_o any_o intervening_a action_n real_o distinct_a from_o either_o the_o agent_n or_o effect_n and_o according_o that_o be_v proper_o call_v a_o emanation_n or_o a_o effect_n by_o emanation_n for_o the_o word_n here_o signify_v passive_o which_o issue_v immediate_o natural_o and_o necessary_o unless_o hinder_v by_o a_o supernatural_a power_n from_o the_o substance_n of_o its_o productive_a
so_o of_o the_o ignorance_n of_o he_o who_o think_v that_o it_o can_v prove_v any_o thing_n else_o but_o the_o weakness_n of_o he_o who_o use_v it_o for_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o judge_v what_o a_o consequence_n this_o be_v viz._n that_o because_o every_o person_n feel_v himself_o by_o self-consciousness_n to_o be_v himself_o and_o not_o to_o be_v another_o therefore_o this_o self-consciousness_n be_v that_o which_o distinguish_v he_o from_o all_o other_o for_o can_v a_o person_n be_v perceive_v his_o own_o distinction_n proper_o make_v or_o give_v he_o this_o distinction_n upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n i_o must_v declare_v that_o i_o can_v think_v any_o one_o who_o look_v upon_o this_o as_o serious_a argue_n worth_n argue_v against_o and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o this_o first_o argument_n of_o the_o animadverter_n have_v be_v sufficient_o expose_v already_o i_o shall_v secure_o venture_v it_o upon_o the_o bottom_n upon_o which_o it_o stand_v without_o any_o fear_n of_o its_o be_v expose_v any_o more_o than_o answer_v especial_o by_o one_o who_o never_o yet_o expose_v any_o thing_n or_o person_n but_o himself_o and_o so_o i_o pass_v to_o the_o animadverter_n 2._o second_o argument_n which_o proceed_v thus_o nothing_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o absolute_a and_o irrelative_a can_v be_v the_o formal_a reason_n of_o personality_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n but_o self-consciousness_n be_v a_o thing_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o absolute_a and_o irrelative_a and_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v the_o reason_n of_o personality_n in_o any_o of_o the_o say_a person_n in_o reply_n to_o which_o argument_n thus_o fair_o formal_o and_o syllogistical_o propose_v why_o do_v not_o this_o author_n as_o in_o all_o regular_a disputation_n it_o ought_v and_o use_n to_o be_v do_v apply_v a_o answer_n either_o by_o deny_v one_o of_o the_o two_o proposition_n or_o by_o distinguish_v one_o or_o more_o of_o the_o term_n but_o this_o not_o be_v to_o be_v do_v without_o logic_n our_o author_n must_v be_v so_o far_o excuse_v and_o therefore_o he_o very_o prudent_o wrap_v himself_o up_o in_o such_o a_o cloud_n of_o insignificant_a word_n as_o may_v enable_v he_o to_o escape_v his_o adversary_n without_o encounter_v he_o for_o one_o of_o these_o two_o thing_n he_o must_v of_o necessity_n disprove_v viz._n either_o first_o that_o the_o divine_a person_n and_o personality_n be_v perfect_o and_o whole_o relative_n or_o second_o that_o self-consciousness_n be_v a_o thing_n whole_o absolute_a and_o irrelative_a as_o to_o the_o first_o of_o which_o he_o himself_o elsewhere_o acknowledge_v and_o affirm_v that_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v three_o relative_n subsistence_n and_o let_v i_o tell_v he_o further_o that_o they_o be_v so_o entire_o relative_n that_o their_o very_a subsistere_fw-la be_v referri_fw-la and_o their_o referri_fw-la not_o only_o consequent_a upon_o and_o supervenient_a to_o their_o subsistence_n as_o it_o be_v in_o create_v person_n but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o with_o it_o so_o that_o by_o virtue_n thereof_o they_o be_v indifferent_o term_v by_o all_o schoolman_n and_o divine_n either_o relative_n subsistence_n or_o subsist_v relation_n the_o concrete_a and_o the_o abstract_a term_n in_o the_o divine_a person_n be_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o peculiar_a condition_n of_o their_o personality_n as_o well_o as_o the_o absolute_a transcendent_a simplicity_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n only_o different_a way_n of_o express_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o therefore_o whereas_o this_o author_n say_v p._n 63._o l._n 8._o do_v that_o which_o make_v john_n a_o person_n make_v he_o a_o father_n i_o answer_v no_o but_o affirm_v also_o that_o that_o which_o make_v the_o first_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n a_o person_n make_v he_o a_o father_n and_o convertible_o that_o that_o which_o make_v he_o a_o father_n and_o that_o only_a make_v he_o also_o a_o person_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o difference_n here_o be_v not_o as_o this_o ignorant_a man_n allege_n because_o every_o humane_a person_n have_v a_o absolute_a nature_n belong_v to_o he_o as_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o relation_n for_o each_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n have_v a_o absolute_a nature_n distinct_o belong_v to_o he_o though_o not_o a_o distinct_a absolute_a nature_n but_o the_o difference_n lie_v in_o this_o that_o a_o humane_a person_n have_v not_o only_o a_o absolute_a nature_n to_o be_v the_o remote_a subject_n of_o the_o relation_n but_o also_o a_o absolute_a personality_n as_o the_o immediate_a subject_n of_o the_o same_o by_o virtue_n whereof_o the_o person_n of_o john_n continue_v after_o the_o relation_n of_o a_o father_n cease_v but_o in_o the_o trinity_n every_o person_n and_o personality_n be_v whole_o relative_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o very_a subsistence_n of_o each_o of_o they_o be_v so_o so_o that_o the_o eternal_a father_n be_v and_o subsist_v as_o a_o father_n by_o have_v a_o son_n and_o not_o by_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o father_n and_o by_o communicate_v his_o essence_n to_o another_o not_o by_o a_o act_n pass_v upon_o and_o whole_o terminate_v in_o his_o own_o person_n no_o this_o be_v postnate_a to_o the_o former_a as_o all_o other_o personal_a act_n whatsoever_o be_v and_o must_v be_v and_o therefore_o the_o godhead_n or_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v absolute_a be_v not_o as_o this_o man_n precarious_o pretend_v original_o distinguish_v by_o three_o self-consciousnesses_a p._n 63._o l._n 24._o but_o by_o three_o original_a relative_n property_n viz._n the_o innascibility_n and_o paternity_n of_o the_o first_o person_n which_o make_v one_o personal_a property_n and_o the_o two_o distinct_a origination_n of_o the_o other_o two_o person_n whereby_o they_o be_v both_o mutual_o distinguish_v from_o and_o oppose_v to_o one_o another_o as_o all_o relative_n be_v but_o this_o man_n offering_n here_o at_o a_o explication_n of_o these_o divine_a relation_n by_o that_o explode_a figment_n of_o a_o man_n and_o his_o live_a image_n p._n 63._o l._n 21._o be_v a_o unsufferable_a profaneness_n as_o well_o as_o a_o arrant_a petitio_fw-la principii_fw-la for_o will_v he_o pretend_v to_o explain_v a_o thing_n in_o itself_o obscure_a by_o another_o that_o be_v more_o obscure_a and_o which_o be_v worse_o impossible_a beside_o let_v he_o for_o the_o future_a learn_v that_o no_o man_n who_o understand_v what_o argue_v be_v aught_o to_o bring_v that_o as_o a_o medium_n either_o of_o explication_n or_o probation_n which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v doubtful_a or_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o suspect_v that_o his_o adversary_n may_v reject_v as_o absurd_a and_o unreasonable_a but_o in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o show_v whether_o self-consciousness_n be_v a_o thing_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o perfect_o absolute_a and_o irrelative_a and_o consequent_o unable_a to_o give_v such_o a_o subsistence_n and_o personality_n to_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n as_o shall_v be_v whole_o relative_n there_o needs_o only_o a_o repetition_n of_o what_o be_v say_v to_o this_o purpose_n in_o the_o animadversion_n and_o which_o this_o author_n have_v very_o discreet_o say_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o word_n to_o viz._n that_o self-consciousness_n be_v a_o thing_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o absolute_a and_o irrelative_a as_o be_v that_o act_n by_o which_o each_o person_n intimate_o know_v and_o be_v conscious_a to_o himself_o of_o his_o own_o be_v act_n motion_n and_o every_o thing_n personal_o belong_v to_o he_o so_o that_o as_o such_o it_o terminate_v within_o and_o look_v no_o further_a than_o that_o one_o person_n who_o it_o be_v a_o entire_a survey_n and_o comprehension_n of_o and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o absolute_a and_o irrelative_a term_n so_o it_o may_v be_v conceive_v distinct_o and_o full_o without_o conceive_v or_o imply_v the_o conception_n of_o any_o thing_n or_o person_n beside_o and_o now_o what_o relation_n do_v or_o can_v such_o a_o act_n of_o self-consciousness_n imply_v in_o it_o it_o be_v indeed_o on_o the_o contrary_a a_o direct_a contradiction_n to_o all_o that_o be_v relative_n for_o it_o enclose_v the_o person_n whole_o within_o himself_o neither_o point_v nor_o look_v further_o nor_o refer_v to_o any_o one_o else_o anim._n p._n 99_o all_o which_o be_v so_o very_o plain_a and_o full_a that_o i_o defy_v this_o author_n or_o any_o man_n alive_a to_o prove_v either_o that_o this_o be_v not_o a_o true_a account_n of_o self-consciousness_n as_o to_o the_o absolute_a and_o irrelative_a nature_n of_o it_o or_o if_o it_o be_v that_o it_o can_v give_v a_o subsistence_n pure_o relative_n to_o the_o person_n which_o it_o shall_v belong_v to_o but_o to_o make_v short_a work_n with_o this_o man_n of_o word_n without_o sense_n there_o be_v in_o every_o relation_n these_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o relation_n both_o remote_a and_o immediate_a the_o foundation_n of_o
and_o the_o seven_o first_o line_n so_o that_o according_a to_o he_o a_o act_n of_o volition_n and_o a_o act_n of_o consciousness_n or_o knowledge_n be_v formal_o and_o proper_o one_o and_o the_o same_o act._n in_o the_o last_o place_n as_o to_o his_o affirm_v that_o three_o distinct_a subsistence_n of_o the_o same_o individual_a nature_n be_v by_o mutual_a consciousness_n essential_o one_o p._n 71._o l._n 9_o i_o answer_v that_o if_o he_o mean_v hereby_o that_o they_o be_v by_o mutual_a consciousness_n make_v essential_o one_o as_o by_o the_o cause_n or_o antecedent_n reason_n of_o that_o unity_n i_o deny_v it_o but_o if_o he_o mean_v that_o they_o be_v thereby_o prove_v essential_o one_o as_o by_o a_o essential_a consequent_a of_o the_o say_a unity_n i_o grant_v it_o but_o this_o will_v do_v he_o but_o little_a service_n for_o his_o hypothesis_n require_v more_o and_o so_o leave_v this_o second_o argument_n in_o its_o full_a force_n against_o he_o i_o proceed_v to_o the_o three_o argument_n 3._o which_o be_v this_o to_o affirm_v mutual_a consciousness_n to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o union_n of_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n in_o the_o same_o nature_n be_v to_o confound_v the_o union_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o say_a person_n together_o which_o confusion_n ought_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v allow_v to_o which_o he_o answer_v that_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v essential_o one_o by_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v not_o to_o affirm_v that_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o union_n p._n 71._o l._n 18._o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a i_o affirm_v that_o if_o for_o one_o thing_n to_o be_v so_o or_o so_o by_o another_o do_v and_o must_v signify_v causal_o then_o to_o say_v that_o thing_n or_o person_n be_v one_o by_o mutual_a consciousness_n and_o yet_o that_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n or_o antecedent_n reason_n of_o their_o be_v one_o be_v a_o direct_a contradiction_n in_o the_o term_n and_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o imagine_v how_o a_o man_n in_o his_o sense_n can_v think_v otherwise_o in_o the_o next_o place_n he_o pass_v impertinent_o from_o the_o union_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n to_o their_o mutual_a indwel_n in_o each_o other_o which_o be_v very_o different_a thing_n affirm_v withal_o that_o his_o mutual_a indwel_n be_v their_o mutual_a consciousness_n though_o this_o have_v be_v and_o still_o be_v peremptory_o deny_v he_o and_o the_o reader_n for_o the_o confutation_n of_o it_o refer_v to_o the_o two_o forecited_a chapter_n of_o the_o animadversion_n which_o this_o author_n neither_o do_v nor_o can_v say_v one_o word_n in_o answer_n to_o well_o but_o how_o do_v he_o prove_v the_o mutual_a inexistence_n or_o indwell_v of_o the_o divine_a person_n to_o be_v mutual_a consciousness_n why_o because_o forsooth_o they_o be_v in_o one_o another_o as_o mind_n not_o as_o body_n p._n 71._o l._n 30._o but_o here_o beside_o that_o we_o deny_v his_o very_a supposition_n viz._n that_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v three_o mind_n we_o deny_v also_o that_o three_o distinct_a mind_n can_v be_v make_v identical_o one_o in_o nature_n by_o any_o consciousness_n or_o mutual_a consciousness_n whatsoever_o and_o in_o the_o divine_a person_n who_o be_v neither_o mind_n nor_o body_n it_o be_v the_o unity_n and_o identity_n of_o their_o essence_n by_o which_o alone_o they_o be_v mutual_o in_o one_o another_o as_o the_o sole_a proper_a reason_n of_o their_o be_v so_o for_o there_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o distinct_a mind_n essence_n or_o nature_n in_o one_o another_o but_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o in_o the_o divine_a person_n union_n and_o communion_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n p._n 72._o l._n 15._o but_o if_o he_o mean_v that_o they_o be_v formal_o and_o in_o all_o respect_v the_o same_o i_o deny_v it_o affirm_v withal_o that_o they_o be_v as_o much_o distinguish_v as_o the_o very_a divine_a essence_n and_o personality_n themselves_o be_v and_o consequent_o that_o the_o union_n of_o the_o person_n consist_v in_o their_o identification_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o essence_n or_o nature_n and_o their_o communion_n consist_v in_o those_o mutual_a act_n towards_o each_o other_o respective_o issue_v from_o and_o belong_v to_o they_o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o personal_a property_n but_o the_o animadverter_n he_o tell_v we_o false_o represent_v both_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n with_o each_o other_o and_o their_o mutual_a consciousness_n too_o in_o these_o word_n cite_v from_o he_o p._n 72._o l._n 27._o viz._n that_o all_o act_n of_o several_a person_n upon_o each_o other_o as_o all_o that_o be_v mutual_a must_v be_v be_v proper_o act_v of_o communion_n by_o which_o the_o say_a person_n have_v a_o intercourse_n among_o themselves_o as_o act_v interchangeable_o upon_o one_o another_o to_o which_o word_n of_o the_o animadverter_n this_o author_n reply_v first_o that_o this_o may_v be_v true_a in_o person_n separate_v but_o that_o person_n only_o distinct_a and_o not_o separate_v do_v not_o act_n upon_o one_o another_o for_o that_o such_o act_v must_v as_o he_o say_v signify_v a_o external_n impression_n make_v by_o one_o person_n upon_o another_o p._n 72._o at_o the_o end_n and_o p._n 73._o at_o the_o beginning_n but_o will_v this_o man_n here_o abide_v by_o this_o false_a and_o profane_a assertion_n for_o do_v not_o the_o divine_a person_n mutual_o know_v and_o mutual_o love_v one_o another_o and_o do_v not_o these_o act_n of_o knowledge_n and_o love_n both_o mutual_o proceed_v from_o they_o and_o mutual_o terminate_v in_o they_o too_o or_o will_v he_o say_v that_o those_o act_n pass_v mutual_o between_o they_o by_o a_o external_n impression_n upon_o each_o other_o or_o last_o that_o the_o divine_a person_n be_v any_o more_o than_o only_o distinct_a certain_o such_o proposition_n as_o this_o audacious_a man_n vent_v the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v never_o accustom_v to_o hear_v or_o endure_v before_o but_o in_o the_o next_o place_n after_o he_o have_v say_v that_o the_o animadverter_n assertion_n may_v hold_v true_a in_o person_n separate_v but_o not_o in_o person_n only_o distinct_a which_o we_o have_v confute_v he_o say_v also_o p._n 72._o at_o the_o end_n that_o it_o hold_v true_a of_o all_o other_o mutual_a act_n except_v mutual_a consciousness_n which_o be_v a_o fulsome_a and_o ridiculous_a beg_n of_o the_o question_n by_o presume_v a_o exception_n where_o he_o shall_v first_o prove_v it_o and_o be_v as_o arrant_a a_o petitio_fw-la principii_fw-la as_o ever_o appear_v in_o argumentation_n and_o i_o challenge_v he_o to_o prove_v how_o the_o exception_n hold_v in_o mutual_a consciousness_n more_o than_o in_o mutual_a complacency_n though_o indeed_o in_o neither_o but_o he_o be_v now_o for_o call_v the_o animadverter_n to_o a_o account_n for_o that_o unwary_a and_o improper_a expression_n as_o he_o represent_v it_o that_o all_o act_n of_o several_a person_n upon_o one_o another_o be_v act_n of_o communion_n which_o say_v he_o in_o the_o gravel-lane_n dialect_n make_v boy_n in_o a_o state_n of_o communion_n with_o each_o other_o at_o box_v and_o a_o match_n at_o scold_v for_o it_o seem_v he_o can_v yet_o rid_v his_o head_n of_o billingsgate_n another_o state_n of_o communion_n to_o which_o my_o answer_n in_o the_o first_o place_n be_v that_o i_o be_o sorry_a to_o find_v his_o ill_a breed_n get_v so_o far_o into_o his_o religion_n as_o to_o dare_v to_o mingle_v such_o sacred_a matter_n with_o such_o dirty_a and_o profane_a comparison_n in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o will_v have_v he_o know_v that_o the_o animadverter_n abide_v by_o what_o he_o have_v say_v and_o according_o will_v have_v this_o man_n learn_v that_o word_n in_o discourse_n though_o never_o so_o general_a and_o indefinite_a be_v yet_o to_o be_v limit_v and_o determine_v in_o their_o sense_n by_o the_o subject_n profess_o treat_v of_o and_o this_o in_o the_o present_a case_n be_v such_o a_o act_n only_o as_o suppose_a person_n in_o a_o state_n of_o agreement_n and_o proceed_v from_o they_o and_o pass_v between_o they_o consider_v only_o as_o such_o and_o i_o must_v tell_v he_o further_o that_o though_o the_o common_a use_n of_o the_o world_n have_v restrain_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n communion_n and_o communication_n ad_fw-la benigniorem_fw-la partem_fw-la yet_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o it_o import_v no_o more_o than_o a_o bare_a interchange_n of_o act_n or_o office_n whether_o friendly_a or_o hostile_a and_o there_o may_v be_v as_o real_a and_o as_o proper_a a_o communication_n of_o ill_n turn_v as_o of_o good_a and_o sometime_o of_o ill_a for_o good_a as_o this_o author_n very_o well_o know_v but_o as_o for_o those_o word_n which_o he_o conclude_v this_o
three_o absolute_a being_n or_o essence_n or_o that_o three_o absolute_a entire_a being_n can_v be_v three_o relative_n subsistence_n or_o modification_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a mind_n or_o be_v than_o i_o will_v grant_v that_o he_o have_v defend_v his_o assertion_n against_o the_o animadverter_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o that_o he_o have_v full_a power_n also_o by_o a_o theological_a use_n of_o his_o own_o make_n to_o alter_v the_o sense_n and_o signification_n of_o all_o word_n in_o spite_n of_o the_o world_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o may_v if_o he_o please_v call_v the_o deanery_n of_o paul_n the_o archbishopric_n of_o canterbury_n and_o behave_v himself_o according_o but_o it_o be_v very_o pleasant_a to_o see_v he_o here_o twice_o in_o p._n 87._o prove_v his_o three_o infinite_a mind_n to_o be_v three_o personal_a subsistence_n by_o that_o explode_a chimaera_n of_o a_o man_n and_o his_o live_a image_n which_o have_v be_v so_o full_o baffle_v and_o expose_v and_o reject_v for_o its_o profaneness_n as_o well_o as_o its_o nonsense_n this_o man_n sure_o must_v have_v a_o degree_n of_o luck_n equal_a to_o his_o confidence_n if_o he_o think_v to_o make_v one_o gross_a absurdity_n a_o argument_n to_o prove_v and_o make_v good_a another_o at_o length_n he_o conclude_v his_o lame_a self-contradicting_a answer_n with_o these_o word_n have_v the_o dean_n say_v he_o make_v three_o complete_a absolute_a eternal_a mind_n he_o have_v be_v just_o chargeable_a with_o make_v three_o god_n p._n 87._o l._n 32._o and_o that_o i_o assure_v he_o be_v a_o concession_n large_a enough_o for_o i_o do_v here_o affirm_v that_o he_o have_v assert_v every_o one_o of_o the_o say_a particular_n whether_o he_o will_v own_v it_o or_o no._n for_o first_o he_o have_v assert_v three_o infinite_a mind_n and_o it_o have_v be_v effectual_o prove_v against_o he_o from_o the_o signification_n definition_n and_o constant_a use_n of_o the_o term._n that_o three_o mind_n be_v formal_o three_o absolute_a being_n and_o second_o he_o have_v assert_v these_o three_o mind_n to_o be_v three_o distinct_a person_n and_o thereby_o have_v assert_v also_o their_o completeness_n since_o personality_n be_v that_o which_o give_v the_o utmost_a completion_n to_o the_o existence_n of_o a_o intelligent_a nature_n and_o three_o and_o last_o by_o assert_v the_o say_a mind_n infinite_a he_o assert_v they_o also_o eternal_a for_o as_o much_o as_o nothing_o can_v be_v infinite_a but_o what_o be_v infinite_o perfect_a nor_o can_v any_o thnig_a be_v infinite_o perfect_a without_o include_v the_o perfection_n of_o eternity_n in_o it_o so_o that_o if_o this_o man_n will_v but_o once_o in_o his_o life_n abide_v by_o his_o own_o word_n which_o a_o self-contradictor_a when_o he_o be_v pinch_v never_o will_v we_o shall_v need_v no_o other_o proof_n but_o his_o forecited_a confession_n to_o convince_v he_o that_o he_o stand_v just_o charge_v with_o assert_v three_o go_n and_o whereas_o he_o assert_v next_o that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a and_o eternal_a mind_n be_v repeat_v in_o three_o subsistence_n p._n 88_o l._n 1._o i_o must_v tell_v he_o again_o that_o the_o term_n repeat_v be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v or_o endure_v here_o since_o the_o repetition_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v proper_o nothing_o else_o but_o the_o production_n of_o another_o individual_a instance_n one_o or_o more_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n and_o whether_o this_o be_v applicable_a to_o or_o affirmable_a of_o the_o divine_a nature_n or_o godhead_n let_v every_o one_o not_o abandon_v by_o common_a sense_n judge_n in_o fine_a when_o this_o man_n shall_v have_v prove_v these_o follow_a position_n collect_v from_o he_o and_o hold_v by_o he_o viz._n 1._o that_o infinite_a mind_n and_o infinite_a intelligent_a person_n be_v term_n as_o equipollent_a adequate_a and_o convertible_a as_o god_n and_o infinite_a mind_n be_v 2._o that_o though_o god_n and_o infinite_a mind_n be_v term_n adequate_o convertible_a and_o equipollent_a yet_o that_o three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n be_v not_o three_o distinct_a god_n whereas_o one_o equipollent_a can_v never_o without_o a_o contradiction_n be_v multiply_v without_o a_o multiplication_n of_o the_o other_o 3._o that_o three_o mind_n be_v not_o three_o absolute_a nature_n or_o essence_n or_o that_o three_o absolute_a nature_n or_o essence_n can_v be_v three_o relative_n subsistence_n and_o consequent_o modification_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a mind_n 4._o that_o three_o distinct_a essence_n or_o three_o essential_o distinct_a mind_n may_v be_v essential_o one_o when_o i_o say_v he_o shall_v have_v prove_v all_o these_o with_o as_o much_o evidence_n as_o he_o have_v assert_v they_o with_o confidence_n then_o will_v he_o have_v secure_v his_o tritheism_n against_o the_o animadverter_n first_o argument_n and_o not_o before_o and_o so_o i_o pass_v on_o to_o consider_v what_o he_o have_v to_o say_v to_o the_o 2._o second_o which_o be_v this_o three_o distinct_a mind_n or_o spirit_n be_v three_o distinct_a substance_n but_o the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o bless_a trinity_n be_v not_o three_o distinct_a substance_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o three_o distinct_a mind_n or_o spirit_n in_o answer_n to_o which_o the_o defender_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o dean_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o know_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o a_o mind_n and_o much_o less_o of_o god_n who_o be_v a_o infinite_a mind_n p._n 88_o l._n 11._o but_o do_v not_o this_o very_a man_n who_o never_o contradict_v himself_o but_o when_o he_o speak_v or_o write_v positive_o profess_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o mind_n or_o spirit_n in_o p._n 7._o of_o this_o defense_n tell_v we_o that_o be_v consist_v in_o internal_a vital_a sensation_n and_o be_v not_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o mind_n the_o substance_n of_o it_o even_o according_a to_o this_o author_n who_o in_o the_o 15_o the_o line_n of_o this_o 88_o the_o page_n use_v the_o word_n nature_n or_o substance_n as_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o now_o will_v he_o disclaim_v all_o pretence_n of_o know_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o a_o mind_n or_o spirit_n after_o he_o have_v undertake_v to_o give_v the_o world_n a_o account_n what_o the_o nature_n or_o substance_n of_o they_o be_v and_o wherein_o it_o do_v consist_v but_o i_o leave_v the_o reader_n to_o reconcile_v this_o man_n as_o he_o find_v he_o here_o in_o this_o 88_o the_o page_n to_o himself_o in_o the_o 7_o the_o page_n of_o the_o same_o defense_n if_o he_o can_v but_o he_o must_v not_o think_v to_o carry_v off_o this_o fallacy_n of_o the_o consequent_a so_o for_o though_o we_o understand_v not_o by_o a_o immediate_a inspection_n of_o thing_n themselves_o the_o specific_a nature_n or_o essence_n of_o this_o or_o that_o kind_n of_o substance_n yet_o sure_o the_o general_n nature_n of_o substance_n may_v by_o discourse_n be_v know_v and_o it_o will_v be_v a_o pleasant_a consequence_n that_o because_o we_o can_v tell_v what_o the_o particular_a nature_n of_o such_o or_o such_o a_o substance_n be_v that_o therefore_o we_o can_v know_v it_o to_o be_v a_o substance_n and_o therefore_o he_o ask_v p._n 89._o l._n 20._o what_o a_o substance_n be_v add_v withal_o that_o he_o hope_v the_o animadverter_n will_v not_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v that_o quod_fw-la substat_fw-la accidentibus_fw-la since_o that_o will_v make_v god_n himself_o who_o be_v incapable_a of_o accident_n to_o be_v no_o substance_n and_o it_o be_v shrewd_o argue_v upon_o my_o word_n but_o why_o then_o do_v he_o stop_v here_o without_o give_v we_o the_o true_a account_n what_o substance_n positive_o be_v which_o the_o very_a element_n of_o logic_n and_o philosophy_n may_v have_v teach_v he_o viz._n that_o substance_n be_v a_o be_v exi_a by_o itself_o so_o as_o neither_o to_o inhere_o in_o or_o be_v support_v by_o another_o be_v as_o a_o subject_a this_o sir_n be_v the_o true_a account_n of_o what_o a_o substance_n be_v and_o such_o a_o substance_n i_o affirm_v a_o mind_n or_o spirit_n to_o be_v but_o as_o for_o that_o which_o do_v substare_fw-la accidentibus_fw-la it_o import_v not_o the_o general_n nature_n or_o essence_n of_o substance_n but_o only_o a_o property_n of_o one_o sort_n of_o substance_n viz._n such_o as_o be_v create_v but_o he_o go_v on_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o though_o understanding_n and_o be_v nature_n or_o substance_n may_v be_v distinguish_v in_o create_v finite_a being_n yet_o that_o st._n austin_n have_v teach_v he_o that_o they_o be_v the_o same_o in_o god_n p._n 88_o l._n 15._o and_o i_o grant_v that_o according_a to_o the_o real_a existence_n of_o the_o thing_n they_o be_v so_o but_o for_o all_o that_o i_o affirm_v that_o they_o differ_v formal_o that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o several_a conceptus_fw-la
in_o unity_n be_v a_o very_a plain_a and_o intelligible_a notion_n vind._n p._n 73._o l._n 17._o from_o whence_o follow_v another_o proposition_n viz._n the_o 15._o that_o the_o divine_a person_n have_v no_o other_o distinction_n but_o what_o they_o have_v by_o self-consciousness_n and_o no_o other_o union_n but_o what_o they_o have_v by_o mutual_a consciousness_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o trinity_n thus_o state_v real_o amount_v to_o no_o more_o than_o a_o council_n or_o cabal_n of_o god_n and_o that_o it_o be_v in_o no_o degree_n so_o much_o profaneness_n for_o the_o socinian_o to_o call_v it_o so_o as_o for_o this_o man_n by_o his_o three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n to_o make_v it_o so_o 16._o the_o three_o divine_a person_n in_o the_o godhead_n be_v not_o only_o modal_o distinguish_v vind._n p._n 83._o l._n last_o but_o general_o all_o the_o divine_n in_o christendom_n hold_v they_o to_o be_v so_o distinguish_v and_o no_o otherwise_o 17._o there_o be_v no_o modes_n no_o more_o than_o there_o be_v quality_n and_o accident_n in_o the_o deity_n vind._n p._n 84._o l._n first_o 18._o person_n distinct_a yet_o not_o separate_v but_o essential_o one_o by_o mutual_a consciousness_n do_v not_o act_v upon_o each_o other_o def._n p._n 73._o l._n 23._o 19_o the_o divine_a nature_n or_o essence_n be_v not_o a_o single_a or_o singular_a nature_n def._n p._n 18._o l._n 13._o 20._o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o say_v that_o the_o one_o divine_a nature_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v incarnate_a and_o yet_o none_o but_o the_o son_n incarnate_a def._n p._n 18._o l._n last_o and_o p._n 19_o l._n first_o 21._o one_o single_a essence_n can_v subsist_v but_o once_o or_o have_v but_o one_o subsistence_n def._n p._n 19_o l._n 23._o and_o p._n 24._o l._n 29._o and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o it_o follow_v 22._o one_o eternal_a infinite_a mind_n be_v repeat_v in_o three_o subsistence_n def._n p._n 94._o l._n 6._o 23._o there_o be_v no_o distinction_n between_o the_o divine_a essence_n and_o a_o divine_a person_n def._n p._n 91._o l._n 28._o and_o yet_o all_o divine_n speak_v of_o the_o divine_a essence_n as_o communicable_a or_o common_a to_o the_o person_n and_o account_v of_o the_o former_a as_o absolute_a and_o of_o the_o latter_a as_o relative_n and_o that_o sure_o import_v distinction_n 24._o the_o divine_a essence_n make_v the_o person_n ibid._n 25._o the_o divine_a essence_n must_v be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o person_n def._n p._n 92._o l._n 19_o 26._o no_o man_n have_v a_o idea_n of_o a_o intelligent_a nature_n or_o essence_n distinguish_v from_o a_o person_n def._n p._n 92._o l._n 10._o 27._o infinite_a mind_n and_o infinite_a intelligent_a person_n be_v term_n as_o equipollent_a and_o convertible_a as_o god_n and_o infinite_a mind_n def._n p._n 81._o l._n 23_o etc._n etc._n 28._o there_o be_v in_o god_n act_v of_o sensation_n of_o a_o different_a kind_n and_o species_n from_o act_n of_o knowledge_n and_o self-consciousness_n and_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v of_o the_o former_a sort_n def._n p._n 77._o l._n 10_o etc._n etc._n 29._o it_o be_v the_o soul_n only_o that_o can_v be_v happy_a or_o miserable_a reward_v or_o punish_v in_o or_o out_o of_o the_o body_n def._n 54._o l._n 31._o and_o if_o so_o what_o need_n say_v i_o can_v there_o be_v of_o a_o resurrection_n such_o doctrine_n certain_o back_v with_o licence_n and_o authority_n may_v come_v to_o something_o in_o time_n 30._o we_o can_v frame_v no_o idea_n of_o substance_n but_o what_o we_o have_v from_o matter_n vind._n p._n 69._o l._n first_o 31._o we_o can_v imagine_v how_o any_o substance_n shall_v be_v without_o a_o beginning_n vind._n p._n 70._o l._n 6._o and_o if_o that_o be_v true_a than_o i_o affirm_v that_o nothing_o can_v be_v imagine_v to_o be_v so_o 32._o the_o nature_n of_o a_o spirit_n consist_v in_o vital_a internal_a sensation_n def._n p._n 7._o l._n 11._o 33._o the_o unity_n of_o a_o spirit_n consist_v in_o continuity_n of_o sensation_n def._n ibid._n 34._o one_o numerical_a nature_n whether_o finite_a or_o infinite_a may_v be_v repeat_v without_o be_v multiply_v of_o the_o first_o whereof_o he_o often_o give_v we_o a_o instance_n in_o a_o man_n and_o his_o live_a image_n def._n p._n 91._o l._n 10._o and_o of_o the_o other_o in_o the_o divine_a nature_n itself_o def._n p._n 31._o l._n first_o 35._o a_o man_n and_o his_o live_a image_n be_v two_o distinct_a man_n though_o the_o image_n be_v not_o another_o man_n def._n p._n 31._o l._n 19_o &_o 21._o 36._o a_o image_n be_v whole_o and_o entire_o the_o same_o with_o the_o prototype_n def._n p._n 28._o l._n 16._o 37._o the_o soul_n be_v the_o person_n and_o the_o body_n only_o the_o organ_n or_o instrument_n of_o it_o def._n p._n 51._o l._n 2._o p._n 57_o l._n 11._o and_o p._n 58._o l._n 16._o 38._o the_o whole_a entire_a personality_n be_v in_o the_o soul_n def._n p._n 50._o l._n 20._o 39_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o person_n and_o the_o body_n be_v take_v into_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o say_a person_n def._n p._n 60._o l._n 22._o 40._o the_o soul_n be_v not_o proper_o part_v of_o the_o person_n def_n p._n 61._o l._n 3._o 41._o the_o body_n be_v not_o a_o part_n of_o the_o person_n def._n p._n 60._o l._n 23._o 42._o the_o soul_n be_v a_o complete_a be_v def._n p._n 49._o l._n 30._o 43._o the_o soul_n may_v be_v a_o complete_a and_o perfect_a person_n and_o yet_o not_o a_o perfect_a man_n def._n p._n 49._o l._n 28_o whereas_o a_o person_n imply_v all_o the_o essential_a perfection_n of_o a_o man_n and_o something_o more_o 44._o a_o man_n with_o a_o body_n blind_a deaf_a and_o lame_a be_v not_o a_o perfect_a man_n viz._n upon_o a_o natural_a and_o essential_a account_n not_o so_o def._n p._n 50._o l._n 10._o 45._o all_o union_n between_o nature_n be_v a_o natural_a union_n def._n p._n 49._o l._n 16._o 46._o the_o soul_n be_v as_o much_o the_o same_o with_o or_o without_o the_o body_n as_o the_o body_n with_o or_o without_o its_o clothes_n def._n p._n 60._o l._n 29._o 47._o unless_o there_o be_v two_o personality_n as_o well_o as_o two_o nature_n viz._n soul_n and_o body_n the_o two_o nature_n can_v be_v two_o part_n of_o one_o human_a personality_n as_o they_o be_v part_n of_o a_o man_n def._n 45._o l._n 25._o now_o what_o gross_a ignorance_n be_v this_o for_o a_o human_a personality_n no_o less_o than_o a_o particular_a humanity_n essential_o and_o metaphysical_o imply_v and_o connote_v part_n though_o only_o the_o person_n and_o man_n himself_o in_o the_o concrete_a be_v actual_o and_o physical_o compound_v of_o they_o to_o which_o i_o add_v that_o two_o personality_n can_v never_o be_v two_o part_n of_o any_o essential_a compound_n whatsoever_o but_o two_o nature_n may_v and_o in_o the_o present_a instance_n certain_o be_v see_v this_o further_o explain_v p._n 115_o 116._o these_o proposition_n with_o several_a other_o like_o they_o be_v his_o new_a dogmata_fw-la in_o divinity_n and_o philosophy_n which_o as_o they_o be_v most_o absurd_a and_o false_a in_o themselves_o so_o the_o consequence_n of_o many_o of_o they_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o incarnation_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n i_o leave_v to_o the_o think_v and_o judicious_a reader_n himself_o to_o draw_v out_o and_o to_o the_o church_n ●o●_n judge_n of_o and_o possible_o some_o time_n or_o other_o foreigner_n also_o may_v be_v present_v with_o a_o view_n of_o they_o in_o a_o language_n which_o they_o understand_v better_a than_o they_o do_v we_o the_o content_n humble_o present_v to_o the_o reader_n be_v perusal_n before_o he_o proceed_v to_o read_v the_o follow_a book_n a_o account_n of_o the_o civil_a language_n bestow_v by_o the_o defender_n upon_o the_o animadverter_n and_o animadversion_n pag._n 2_o 3_o the_o objection_n about_o the_o word_n mystery_n prove_v only_o the_o blunder_n of_o the_o objector_n 4._o the_o defender_n weary_v the_o reader_n with_o a_o nauseous_a repetition_n of_o his_o old_a confute_v hypothesis_n without_o any_o new_a argument_n to_o enforce_v it_o 7_o he_o begin_v it_o with_o a_o gross_a untruth_n 7_o 8_o 9_o he_o add_v another_o as_o gross_a 9_o 10_o etc._n etc._n he_o do_v not_o as_o he_o false_o affirm_v concur_v perfect_o with_o the_o schoolman_n in_o state_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n 11_o the_o vnconceivableness_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n never_o account_v by_o the_o christian_a church_n any_o objection_n against_o it_o at_o all_o 12_o the_o father_n way_n of_o explain_v the_o trinity_n wrongful_o slight_v and_o reflect_v upon_o by_o this_o author_n 12_o 13_o 14_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o spiritual_a sensation_n it_o be_v no_o better_a than_o a_o contradiction_n in_o adjecto_fw-la 15_o 16_o etc._n etc._n the_o
nature_n of_o a_o spirit_n prove_v not_o to_o consist_v in_o vital_a internal_a sensation_n 17_o 18_o 19_o the_o trinity_n in_o unity_n not_o explicable_a by_o sensation_n and_o continuity_n of_o sensation_n 20_o 21_o no_o man_n feeling_n himself_o a_o distinct_a person_n can_v be_v the_o reason_n of_o his_o be_v so_o 22_o 23_o the_o defender_n compliment_n to_o the_o animadverter_n return_v 24_o mutual_a consciousness_n can_v never_o make_v three_o distinct_a spirit_n essential_o one_o 26_o 27_o mutual_a consciousness_n according_a to_o this_o author_n principle_n must_v consist_v of_o three_o distinct_a act_n 27_o 28_o his_o profane_a assertion_n concern_v the_o trinity_n 30_o each_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n as_o a_o distinct_a person_n be_v not_o a_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n with_o a_o refutation_n of_o his_o argument_n bring_v to_o prove_v it_o so_o 31_o 32_o 33_o 34_o his_o absurd_a assertion_n concern_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o divine_a person_n 35_o 36_o 37_o his_o vain_a endeavour_n to_o justify_v his_o hypothesis_n of_o three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n from_o the_o allusion_n use_v by_o the_o father_n about_o the_o trinity_n 38_o 39_o a_o extraordinary_a discovery_n make_v by_o this_o author_n of_o resemblance_n without_o likeness_n 40_o 41_o his_o gross_a mistake_v and_o precarious_a assertion_n concern_v the_o sense_n and_o use_n of_o the_o term_n person_n from_o p._n 41_o to_o 50_o his_o ridiculous_a plead_n theological_n use_n for_o the_o word_n mind_n as_o import_v the_o same_o with_o person_n while_o none_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o use_v it_o so_o but_o himself_o and_o some_o few_o heretic_n beside_o 46_o 47_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o a_o numerical_a unity_n of_o nature_n or_o essence_n in_o the_o divine_a person_n 51_o all_o specific_a unity_n of_o nature_n or_o any_o thing_n analogous_a to_o it_o in_o the_o divine_a person_n prove_v absurd_a and_o impossible_a 52_o 53_o the_o divine_a nature_n prove_v against_o this_o author_n to_o be_v a_o single_a or_o singular_a nature_n together_o with_o a_o refutation_n of_o some_o other_o of_o his_o false_a and_o heretical_a assertion_n from_o p._n 54_o to_o 60_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o three_o person_n prove_v not_o to_o be_v as_o this_o defender_n will_v have_v it_o partly_o specifical_a and_o partly_o numerical_a 55_o 56_o the_o testimony_n of_o victorinus_n afer_n of_o little_a or_o no_o authority_n with_o reference_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n 60_o 61_o two_o other_o of_o this_o defender_n scandalous_a assertion_n refute_v 61_o 62_o his_o romance_n of_o a_o man_n and_o his_o live_a image_n so_o absurd_o and_o profane_o bring_v by_o he_o as_o a_o explication_n of_o the_o essential_a union_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n examine_v and_o explode_v from_o p._n 63_o to_o 80_o his_o gross_a ignorance_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o import_n of_o the_o term_n emanation_n 73_o the_o proper_a and_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o explain_v ibid._n a_o account_n both_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o image_n in_o general_n and_o of_o a_o image_n by_o reflection_n in_o particular_a 65_o 66_o the_o animadverter_n objection_n that_o dr._n sherlock_n have_v state_v a_o trinity_n in_o unity_n so_o as_o utter_o to_o overthrow_v the_o mysteriousness_n of_o it_o enforce_v and_o make_v good_a 81_o 82_o the_o mysteriousness_n of_o the_o same_o deny_v also_o by_o le-clerk_n in_o his_o theological_a epistle_n under_o the_o name_n of_o liberius_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la amore_fw-la where_o the_o reader_n may_v find_v the_o material_n of_o this_o author_n be_v new_a hypothesis_n and_o where_o this_o author_n himself_o may_v be_v suppose_v also_o to_o have_v find_v they_o before_o from_o p._n 82_o to_o 85_o the_o school-term_n defend_v and_o the_o use_v of_o they_o assert_v against_o this_o illiterate_a innovator_n 86_o 87_o the_o term_n formal_a reason_n of_o a_o thing_n further_o explain_v and_o insist_v upon_o 89_o 90_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o point_n in_o dispute_n between_o dr._n sherlock_n and_o the_o animadverter_n full_o and_o particular_o represent_v from_o p._n 91_o to_o 99_o his_o blunder_n about_o convertibility_n and_o proprium_fw-la quarto_fw-la modo_fw-la 99_o 100_o etc._n etc._n his_o fly_v from_o the_o act_n of_o self-consciousness_n to_o the_o principle_n thereof_o prove_v a_o mere_a shift_n and_o a_o utter_a change_n of_o the_o question_n 101_o 102_o etc._n etc._n the_o animadverter_n first_o argument_n prove_v self-consciousness_n neither_o act_n nor_o principle_n to_o be_v the_o formal_a reason_n of_o personality_n in_o create_a being_n enforce_v from_o p._n 101_o to_o 108_o the_o second_o argument_n vindicate_v and_o the_o defect_n of_o the_o boetian_a definition_n of_o a_o person_n note_v from_o p._n 108_o to_o 112_o the_o three_o argument_n for_o the_o same_o confirm_v also_o 112_o 113_o etc._n etc._n the_o dispute_n concern_v the_o personality_n of_o the_o soul_n both_o in_o and_o out_o of_o the_o body_n resume_v and_o carry_v on_o against_o this_o author_n and_o all_o his_o heterodox_n vnphilosophical_a assertion_n concern_v it_o thorough_o canvas_v and_o confute_v from_o p._n 114_o to_o 151_o every_o man_n constitute_v such_o according_a to_o this_o author_n be_v avow_a principle_n not_o by_o a_o essential_a composition_n but_o by_o a_o hypostatick_a union_n of_o the_o soul_n with_o the_o body_n from_o p._n 147_o to_o 150_o the_o defender_n pretend_a answer_n to_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o animadversion_n prove_v self-consciousness_n not_o to_o be_v the_o formal_a reason_n of_o personality_n in_o the_o divine_a person_n examine_v and_o the_o several_a argument_n there_o produce_v against_o it_o make_v good_a from_o p._n 152_o to_o 171_o he_o manifest_o give_v up_o the_o point_n in_o dispute_n between_o he_o and_o his_o adversary_n and_o that_o in_o several_a place_n viz._n 153_o 154._o item_n 160_o 161._o and_o 168._o and_o 204_o etc._n etc._n his_o blasphemy_n 170_o the_o animadverter_n argument_n bring_v to_o prove_v that_o mutual_a consciousness_n can_v be_v that_o which_o make_v as_o this_o author_n affirm_v the_o three_o divine_a person_n essential_o one_o god_n in_o like_a manner_n confirm_v and_o enforce_v from_o p._n 171_o to_o 183_o etc._n etc._n his_o shift_a pretence_n that_o by_o mutual_a consciousness_n he_o mean_v the_o principle_n not_o the_o act_n thereof_o irrefragable_o overthrow_v from_o his_o own_o repeat_v expression_n and_o assertion_n p._n 172_o to_o 178_o the_o thing_n itself_o effectual_o disprove_v by_o reason_n and_o argument_n p._n 178_o to_o 182_o how_o the_o divine_a knowledge_n be_v diversify_v 190_o 191_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n with_o one-another_o assert_v and_o prove_v not_o to_o be_v formal_o the_o same_o with_o the_o union_n of_o the_o say_a person_n 193_o 194_o a_o downright_a shameless_a unconscionable_a lie_n affirm_v by_o this_o defender_n 195_o 196_o his_o silly_a cavil_n about_o union_n of_o nature_n and_o about_o personality_n answer_v 156_o 157_o 158_o no_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o mutual_a indwel_n of_o mind_n in_o one_o another_o 199_o this_o author_n be_v great_a ignorance_n in_o explode_v all_o priority_n and_o posteriority_n from_o our_o conception_n and_o discourse_n of_o god_n expose_v and_o lay_v open_a and_o the_o necessity_n of_o admit_v the_o same_o unanswerable_o prove_v against_o he_o p._n 199_o to_o 203_o his_o pretence_n of_o not_o dispute_v about_o the_o essence_n of_o thing_n show_v impertinent_a to_o the_o purpose_n he_o allege_v it_o for_o and_o withal_o gross_o contradictious_a to_o what_o he_o himself_o have_v positive_o affirm_v elsewhere_o 204_o 205_o how_o knowledge_n and_o how_o all_o art_n and_o science_n be_v distinguish_v and_o denominate_v from_o their_o respective_a object_n which_o this_o author_n be_v utter_o ignorant_a of_o show_v and_o explain_v 207_o 208_o sensation_n in_o god_n as_o whole_o differ_v according_a to_o this_o author_n in_o kind_a from_o the_o divine_a knowledge_n disprove_v and_o explode_v p._n 208_o to_o 213_o his_o scandalous_a falsification_n in_o quite_o change_v the_o state_n of_o the_o present_a question_n contrary_a to_o his_o own_o positive_a frequent_a and_o express_v assertion_n throughout_o the_o vindication_n etc._n etc._n p._n 214_o to_o 218_o the_o same_o make_v yet_o more_o manifest_a by_o collate_v what_o he_o say_v here_o with_o what_o he_o have_v affirm_v there_o ibid._n the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n substitute_v in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o precede_a false_a one_o 219_o his_o vain_a endeavour_n to_o rescue_v his_o hypothesis_n of_o three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n or_o spirit_n from_o the_o charge_n of_o tritheism_n 220_o his_o assertion_n of_o the_o equipollency_n of_o the_o term_n infinite_a mind_n and_o infinite_a intelligent_a person_n prove_v intolerable_o false_a and_o absurd_a 223_o 224_o etc._n etc._n the_o difference_n
between_o three_o infinite_a person_n and_o three_o infinite_a mind_n 228_o a_o syllogism_n very_o learned_o form_v by_o this_o defender_n for_o his_o old_a friend_n the_o socinian_o with_o two_o term_n and_o no_o more_o 229_o the_o nature_n import_n and_o force_v of_o the_o equipollency_n of_o term_n declare_v 234_o 235_o 236_o the_o assertion_n of_o three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n inevitable_o infer_v a_o plurality_n of_o god_n but_o the_o assertion_n of_o three_o distinct_a infinite_a person_n do_v not_o so_o and_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o difference_n plain_o show_v 237_o 238_o 239_o etc._n etc._n the_o defender_n confute_v by_o his_o own_o express_a concession_n 244_o his_o new-coined_a and_o never_o before_o hear_v of_o expression_n viz._n that_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v repeat_v in_o three_o subsistence_n ought_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v endure_v but_o utter_o reject_v as_o absurd_a both_o in_o philosophy_n and_o theology_n 242_o item_n 260_o etc._n etc._n this_o defender_n manifest_o ignorant_a what_o the_o true_a definition_n of_o substance_n be_v 247_o his_o equal_o gross_a and_o ridiculous_a ignorance_n in_o suppose_v a_o res_fw-la cogitans_fw-la to_o be_v a_o different_a thing_n from_o a_o substantia_fw-la cogitans_fw-la or_o intelligens_fw-la 249_o naturae_fw-la rationalis_fw-la individua_fw-la substantia_fw-la a_o essential_a predicate_v indeed_o but_o not_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o person_n 250_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n prove_v not_o to_o be_v three_o distinct_a substance_n but_o three_o distinct_a mind_n prove_v necessary_o to_o be_v so_o 251_o prove_v that_o the_o father_n by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o apply_v to_o the_o divine_a person_n never_o mean_v to_o conclude_v a_o specific_a but_o only_o a_o numerical_a unity_n of_o nature_n or_o substance_n belong_v to_o they_o by_o show_v how_o far_o they_o argue_v against_o the_o arian_n from_o the_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 253_o 254_o that_o the_o ancient_n never_o admit_v three_o individual_a substance_n in_o the_o godhead_n prove_v from_o the_o latin_a church_n refuse_v for_o a_o long_a time_n the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 255_o this_o author_n be_v fulsome_a ignorance_n in_o suppose_v a_o numerical_a difference_n not_o to_o be_v a_o essential_a difference_n 257_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o three_o mind_n to_o exist_v in_o one_o infinite_a mind_n or_o substance_n so_o as_o thereby_o to_o become_v essential_o one_o 259_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o two_o or_o more_o substance_n to_o be_v absolute_o inseparable_a which_o be_v another_o demonstration_n that_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n can_v be_v three_o distinct_a substance_n mind_n or_o spirit_n ibid._n the_o animadverter_n argument_n against_o three_o substance_n in_o the_o godhead_n assert_v and_o confirm_v 262_o the_o defender_n scandalous_a assertion_n concern_v the_o divine_a essence_n and_o a_o divine_a person_n examine_v and_o overthrow_v p._n 263_o to_o 267_o a_o notable_a passage_n out_o of_o faustinus_n against_o the_o admission_n of_o three_o individual_a substance_n in_o the_o godhead_n 268_o the_o animadverter_n three_o argument_n against_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v three_o distinct_a mind_n vindicate_v and_o the_o force_n of_o it_o prove_v to_o be_v found_v not_o in_o the_o mere_a opposition_n of_o the_o numeral_a term_n one_o and_o three_o but_o in_o the_o peculiar_a nature_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o subject_n which_o they_o be_v here_o apply_v to_o 270_o 271_o three_o infinite_a mind_n can_v no_o more_o be_v essential_o one_o infinite_a mind_n than_o three_o person_n can_v upon_o any_o account_n whatsoever_o be_v natural_o one_o person_n 272_o for_o three_o to_o be_v one_o and_o one_o to_o be_v three_o in_o respect_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o unity_n or_o diversity_n be_v impossible_a ibid._n a_o ridiculous_a cavil_v of_o the_o defender_n proceed_v from_o his_o gross_a ignorance_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o use_v of_o the_o word_n attribute_n as_o apply_v to_o god_n 275_o the_o defender_n perpetual_a blunder_n in_o conclude_v each_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n to_o be_v a_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n because_o infinite_a mind_n belong_v distinct_o to_o each_o of_o they_o p._n 277_o to_o 280_o to_o assert_v the_o three_o divine_a person_n to_o be_v three_o infinite_a mind_n utter_o irreconcilable_a to_o the_o form_n of_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n ibid._n the_o same_o individual_a divine_a nature_n belong_v in_o common_a to_o all_o the_o divine_a person_n but_o upon_o the_o same_o account_n on_o which_o it_o be_v common_a to_o they_o all_o it_o do_v not_o belong_v distinct_o to_o each_o or_o any_o of_o they_o 279_o a_o notable_a passage_n out_o of_o a_o latin_a tract_n insert_v into_o athanasius_n work_n express_o deny_v the_o three_o divine_a person_n to_o be_v three_o spirit_n 281_o the_o blasphemy_n charge_v upon_o the_o passage_n extract_v out_o of_o dr._n sherlock_n book_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o jesus_n by_o the_o animadverter_n in_o his_o preface_n still_o insist_v upon_o and_o the_o charge_n make_v good_a against_o he_o 283_o 284_o good_a and_o charitable_a advice_n give_v to_o this_o author_n 285_o 286_o a_o summary_n account_v of_o the_o several_a way_n and_o shift_n make_v use_v of_o by_o the_o defender_n throughout_o this_o whole_a defence_n p._n 286_o to_o 289_o some_o instance_n of_o the_o extraordinary_a virtue_n of_o mr._n dean_n mean_v show_v of_o what_o singular_a use_v it_o be_v to_o he_o upon_o more_o occasion_n than_o one_o p._n 289_o to_o 292_o the_o complaint_n make_v by_o some_o against_o the_o animadverter_n as_o if_o he_o have_v treat_v mr._n dean_n forsooth_o with_o too_o much_o sharpness_n show_v to_o be_v partial_a and_o unreasonable_a and_o consequent_o not_o worth_a regard_n 293_o 294_o the_o animadverter_n resolution_n how_o to_o deal_v with_o he_o for_o the_o future_a 294_o his_o scurrility_n towards_o the_o animadverter_n in_o six_o several_a instance_n lay_v open_a and_o remark_v upon_o such_o as_o for_o example_n his_o traduce_v he_o as_o one_o who_o can_v only_o make_v a_o shift_n to_o read_v and_o to_o transcribe_v and_o as_o one_o who_o must_v be_v teach_v to_o construe_v the_o father_n call_v he_o withal_o grin_a dog_n etc._n etc._n p._n 294_o to_o 302_o a_o brief_a vindication_n of_o the_o animadverter_n against_o the_o objection_n and_o unprovoke_v spite_n of_o the_o socinian_n considerer_n p._n 302_o to_o 312_o a_o memorable_a say_v of_o a_o certain_a dean_n to_o a_o poor_a widow_n desire_v to_o renew_v her_o lease_n with_o he_o 308_o dr._n sherlock_n and_o not_o the_o animadverter_n a_o favourite_n of_o the_o socinian_o 302_o 303_o 304_o etc._n etc._n a_o remark_n or_o two_o upon_o the_o little_a oxford-excommunicate_a late_o expel_v from_o exeter_n college_n 313_o this_o new_a hypothesis_n sufficient_o debate_v and_o confute_v already_o and_o the_o truth_n assert_v against_o it_o by_o argument_n and_o consequent_o the_o exertion_n of_o the_o episcopal_a censure_n and_o authority_n the_o fit_a way_n to_o deal_v both_o with_o that_o and_o its_o author_n for_o the_o future_a 315_o the_o whole_a close_v up_o with_o a_o remarkable_a expression_n apply_v to_o the_o present_a subject_n some_o errata_fw-la of_o the_o press_n in_o the_o table_n of_o new_a heterod_n proposition_n page_n the_o last_o lin_v 15._o for_o of_o judge_n of_o r._n to_o judge_v of_o p._n 22._o l._n 5._o for_o entire_a read_v entire_a p._n 49._o l._n 12._o for_o 26_o r._n 25_o p._n 60._o l._n 14._o for_o singulur_n r._n singular_a p._n 73._o l._n 5._o deal_n e._n p._n 76._o l._n 25._o for_o effential_a r._n essential_a p._n 83._o l._n 11._o for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 174._o l._n 15._o for_o coutradict_a r._n contradict_v p._n 236._o l._n 14._o for_o infinite_a r._n infinite_a p._n 244._o l._n 31._o for_o thnig_n r._n thing_n p._n 246._o l._n 27._o for_o consist_v r._n consist_v p._n 251._o l._n 1._o for_o substancs_n r._n substance_n p._n 280._o l._n 22._o for_o be_v evident_a r._n be_v as_o evident_a p._n 302._o l._n 15._o for_o 7._o r._n 6._o where_o adimadverter_n occurr_v r._n animadverter_n for_o and_o indeed_o r._n or_o rather_o indeed_o p._n 313._o last_o line_n but_o two_o tritheism_n charge_v etc._n etc._n as_o it_o may_v just_o be_v account_v a_o needless_a so_o it_o be_v certain_o a_o nauseous_a task_n to_o attempt_v the_o confutation_n of_o a_o book_n more_o than_o sufficient_o confute_v already_o by_o the_o very_a book_n which_o it_o be_v write_v against_o for_o so_o much_o i_o dare_v and_o shall_v aver_v that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o passage_n in_o all_o this_o defence_n of_o dr._n sherlock_n notion_n of_o the_o trinity_n as_o it_o be_v call_v carry_v with_o it_o so_o much_o as_o the_o face_n of_o a_o argument_n as_o none_o carry_v with_o it_o
suppose_v that_o three_o divine_a person_n can_v be_v more_o unite_v than_o three_o spirit_n or_o that_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v the_o great_a union_n that_o three_o person_n be_v capable_a of_o both_o which_o be_v utter_o false_a and_o the_o very_a thing_n now_o under_o dispute_n and_o we_o shall_v present_o show_v the_o vast_a disparity_n between_o person_n and_o spirit_n with_o reference_n to_o the_o union_n which_o each_o of_o they_o may_v admit_v but_o our_o author_n go_v on_o thus_o if_o say_v he_o a_o natural_a self-conscious_a sensation_n make_v a_o spirit_n one_o with_o itself_o why_o shall_v not_o a_o mutual_a conscious_a sensation_n unite_v three_o into_o one_o for_o if_o natural_a unity_n extend_v as_o far_o as_o conscious_a sensation_n then_o if_o conscious_a sensation_n extend_v to_o three_o why_o shall_v not_o these_o three_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v natural_o one_o p._n 8._o l._n 1._o to_o which_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o it_o have_v be_v already_o show_v that_o although_o this_o conscious_a sensation_n be_v that_o whereby_o a_o spirit_n know_v itself_o to_o be_v one_o and_o distinct_a from_o all_o other_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o that_o which_o make_v it_o so_o and_o the_o suppose_n of_o this_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o run_v through_o this_o man_n whole_a hypothesis_n and_o consequent_o whatsoever_o be_v argue_v from_o this_o supposition_n towards_o the_o prove_v the_o same_o of_o mutual_a consciousness_n with_o reference_n to_o three_o spirit_n which_o have_v be_v assert_v of_o self-consciousness_n with_o reference_n to_o one_o must_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n with_o it_o but_o second_o because_o he_o ask_v a_o reason_n why_o mutual_a consciousness_n may_v not_o give_v natural_a unity_n to_o three_o spirit_n as_o well_o as_o self-consciousness_n do_v to_o one_o though_o the_o former_a be_v the_o great_a absurdity_n of_o the_o two_o yet_o since_o both_o assertion_n be_v equal_o false_a i_o shall_v give_v this_o one_o reason_n against_o both_o viz._n because_o consciousness_n or_o sensation_n be_v not_o proper_o nature_n but_o a_o affection_n of_o nature_n or_o a_o act_n spring_v from_o it_o and_o therefore_o unity_n of_o consciousness_n or_o sensation_n can_v be_v proper_o unity_n of_o nature_n nor_o consequent_o can_v it_o constitute_v the_o subject_n it_o belong_v to_o naturally_n one._n and_o whereas_o according_a to_o his_o sophistical_a way_n he_o call_v it_o a_o natural_a self-conscious_a sensation_n p._n 7._o l._n 30._o if_o by_o natural_a he_o mean_v that_o wherein_o nature_n do_v consist_v or_o which_o give_v be_v and_o unity_n to_o a_o thing_n in_o that_o sense_n as_o it_o have_v be_v prove_v all_o along_o self-consciousness_n can_v be_v term_v natural_a but_o if_o by_o natural_a he_o mean_v that_o which_o proceed_v from_o nature_n that_o be_v true_a but_o come_v not_o up_o to_o his_o purpose_n well_o but_o suppose_v that_o consciousness_n or_o sensation_n be_v indeed_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n conscious_a or_o in_o other_o word_n that_o wherein_o the_o be_v of_o the_o say_a thing_n do_v consist_v and_o consequent_o that_o unity_n of_o consciousness_n be_v unity_n of_o nature_n too_o as_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v yet_o for_o that_o very_a cause_n i_o deny_v that_o this_o consciousness_n and_o unity_n of_o consciousness_n can_v belong_v in_o common_a to_o three_o distinct_a absolute_a being_n for_o as_o much_o as_o every_o absolute_a be_v be_v constitute_v such_o by_o a_o particular_a proper_a and_o distinct_a nature_n of_o its_o own_o belong_v to_o it_o and_o include_v in_o it_o and_o distinguish_v it_o from_o every_o other_o absolute_a be_v beside_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o particular_a nature_n numerical_o one_o to_o be_v in_o any_o more_o absolute_a being_n than_o in_o one_o alone_a in_o three_o several_a person_n indeed_o who_o several_a personality_n and_o personal_a distinction_n consist_v proper_o in_o three_o distinct_a relation_n nothing_o hinder_v but_o that_o the_o same_o numerical_a nature_n if_o infinite_a may_v be_v in_o they_o all_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o same_o numerical_a nature_n may_v sustain_v all_o these_o three_o distinct_a relation_n and_o herein_o consist_v the_o great_a disparity_n between_o spirit_n which_o be_v absolute_a being_n and_o the_o divine_a person_n which_o be_v not_o so_o and_o this_o be_v true_a reason_n and_o consequence_n and_o proof_n against_o all_o that_o this_o novellist_n can_v allege_v against_o it_o but_o after_o all_o in_o the_o three_o and_o last_o place_n the_o very_a ground_n upon_o which_o this_o man_n build_v from_o first_o to_o last_o in_o prove_v that_o mutual-consciousness_n or_o sensation_n give_v natural_a unity_n to_o three_o distinct_a spirit_n be_v false_a and_o sink_v under_o he_o for_o he_o suppose_v all_o along_o that_o this_o mutual-consciousness_n be_v one_o numerical_a natural_a act_n which_o upon_o his_o principle_n viz._n that_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v three_o infinite_a spirit_n i_o utter_o deny_v and_o on_o the_o contrary_n affirm_v it_o to_o be_v only_o a_o complex_fw-la and_o collective_a unity_n consist_v of_o and_o contain_v in_o it_o three_o distinct_a act_n of_o consciousness_n whereof_o one_o belong_v to_o each_o of_o his_o three_o spirit_n and_o be_v that_o whereby_o each_o spirit_n know_v or_o feel_v let_v he_o call_v it_o which_o he_o will_v all_o that_o be_v in_o or_o be_v know_v or_o feel_v by_o the_o other_o two_o spirit_n this_o i_o affirm_v and_o challenge_v this_o author_n when_o he_o enter_v upon_o this_o dispute_n again_o to_o disprove_v for_o whatsoever_o be_v the_o act_n of_o a_o absolute_a distinct_a be_v must_v itself_o be_v as_o distinct_a as_o that_o be_v be_v and_o so_o his_o principal_a notion_n of_o three_o distinct_a spirit_n be_v natural_o one_o by_o one_o mutual_a consciousness_n extend_v to_o they_o all_o fall_v to_o nothing_o for_o sure_o three_o distinct_a consciousness_n or_o act_n of_o consciousness_n which_o this_o mutual_a consciousness_n consist_v of_o can_v never_o make_v three_o spirit_n natural_o one_o since_o these_o three_o act_n be_v not_o natural_o but_o only_o collective_o one_o themselves_o and_o according_o under_o that_o unity_n and_o no_o other_o can_v they_o be_v express_v by_o that_o one_o denomination_n mutual_a consciousness_n but_o he_o proceed_v and_o to_o show_v the_o world_n what_o a_o iron-necessity_n or_o rather_o what_o a_o cruel_a bondage_n one_o imperious_a absurdity_n will_v bring_v the_o maintainer_n of_o it_o under_o he_o tell_v we_o in_o the_o 8_o the_o page_n that_o it_o be_v this_o viz._n his_o notion_n of_o self-consciousness_n and_o mutual-consciousness_n that_o force_v the_o dean_n as_o no_o absurdity_n affect_v mr._n dean_n privilege_n of_o stand_v alone_o by_o itself_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o three_o infinite_a and_o eternal_a person_n in_o the_o godhead_n under_o the_o character_n of_o three_o infinite_a and_o eternal_a mind_n for_o this_o conscious_a sensation_n whether_o self-consciousness_n or_o mutual-consciousness_n can_v belong_v only_o to_o mind_n which_o latter_a i_o here_o absolute_o deny_v and_o in_o this_o one_o word_n mind_n plural_o use_v by_o he_o he_o manifest_o beg_v the_o question_n again_o and_o suppose_v the_o chief_a thing_n to_o be_v prove_v viz._n that_o there_o be_v a_o plurality_n of_o infinite_a mind_n to_o which_o this_o self-consciousness_n and_o mutual-consciousness_n must_v belong_v for_o what_o mind_n else_o can_v he_o here_o mean_a not_o finite_a or_o create_v mind_n for_o he_o himself_o in_o the_o 67_o the_o page_n of_o his_o vindication_n deny_v that_o this_o mutual-consciousness_n can_v belong_v to_o any_o create_a mind_n or_o spirit_n so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o here_o speak_v of_o infinite_a mind_n which_o as_o i_o say_v be_v the_o thing_n chief_o dispute_v aught_o to_o have_v be_v prove_v by_o he_o before_o presume_v and_o consequent_o that_o he_o speak_v also_o of_o such_o a_o self-consciousness_n and_o such_o a_o mutual-consciousness_n as_o import_v infinite_a knowledge_n and_o since_o they_o do_v so_o i_o deny_v that_o they_o can_v belong_v to_o any_o more_o mind_n than_o one_o i_o say_v than_o to_o one_o eternal_a infinite_a mind_n which_o be_v god_n bless_v for_o ever_o for_o be_v act_n of_o knowledge_n they_o follow_v and_o flow_v from_o the_o divine_a essence_n and_o nature_n common_a to_o the_o three_o person_n and_o be_v no_o more_o than_o the_o divine_a omniscience_n terminate_a upon_o all_o and_o each_o of_o the_o person_n as_o so_o many_o particular_a object_n contain_v within_o its_o adequate_a object_n which_o be_v all_o thing_n knowable_a admit_v therefore_o that_o this_o self-consciousness_n and_o mutual-consciousness_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o divine_a omniscience_n thus_o diverse_o terminate_v may_v infer_v a_o plurality_n of_o person_n knowable_a in_o the_o godhead_n yet_o i_o utter_o deny_v that_o they_o
do_v or_o can_v infer_v in_o it_o a_o plurality_n of_o mind_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o say_a act_n belong_v to_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n as_o have_v be_v just_a now_o observe_v by_o virtue_n of_o that_o one_o infinite_a mind_n from_o which_o they_o flow_v and_o which_o be_v numerical_o one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o all_o three_o but_o this_o author_n be_v now_o upon_o a_o high_a strain_n and_o resolve_v under_o the_o protection_n of_o a_o licence_n to_o open_v himself_o far_o than_o before_o tell_v we_o in_o plain_a term_n that_o if_o every_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n consider_v as_o a_o distinct_a person_n be_v not_o a_o distinct_a infinite_a and_o eternal_a mind_n there_o be_v he_o confess_v a_o end_n of_o his_o notion_n p._n 8._o and_o i_o think_v it_o have_v be_v well_o for_o the_o church_n and_o himself_o too_o if_o it_o have_v never_o have_v a_o beginning_n but_o then_o he_o add_v with_o unsufferable_a presumption_n and_o equal_a falsehood_n that_o with_o that_o there_o will_v be_v a_o end_n of_o a_o trinity_n of_o person_n also_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v nothing_o leave_v but_o a_o trinity_n of_o modes_n posture_n and_o name_n not_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n but_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o one_o person_n who_o be_v the_o whole_a deity_n these_o be_v his_o detestable_o heretical_a and_o senseless_a word_n in_o answer_n to_o which_o i_o demand_v of_o this_o confident_a man_n how_o he_o dare_v in_o defiance_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n place_v a_o trinity_n of_o modes_n posture_n and_o name_n upon_o the_o same_o level_n as_o if_o they_o all_o indifferent_o amount_v but_o to_o the_o same_o thing_n whereas_o name_n be_v certain_o of_o arbitrary_a imposition_n whether_o god_n or_o man_n impose_v they_o and_o posture_n none_o ascribe_v to_o god_n but_o that_o silly_a sort_n of_o man_n the_o anthropomorphites_n but_o as_o for_o modes_n they_o result_v eternal_o and_o necessary_o from_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o eternal_o and_o inseparable_o remain_v in_o it_o and_o withal_o import_v such_o distinct_a relation_n as_o can_v never_o coincide_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n and_o how_o then_o can_v this_o ignorant_a man_n talk_v of_o the_o unity_n of_o one_o person_n who_o be_v the_o whole_a deity_n or_o godhead_n when_o these_o three_o relation_n can_v never_o concur_v in_o such_o a_o unity_n of_o person_n but_o all_o of_o they_o may_v and_o do_v concur_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n in_o a_o word_n i_o do_v here_o ask_v this_o bold_a man_n whether_o he_o will_v venture_v to_o affirm_v that_o the_o divine_a nature_n determine_v or_o modify_v by_o such_o a_o certain_a subsistence_n or_o subsist_v relation_n be_v a_o mere_a mode_n or_o no_o and_o i_o do_v here_o leave_v it_o to_o his_o second_o thought_n whether_o he_o will_v venture_v to_o say_v so_o and_o if_o not_o why_o do_v he_o here_o against_o his_o conscience_n reproach_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o so_o it_o be_v as_o if_o it_o establish_v a_o trinity_n of_o mere_a modes_n which_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o that_o i_o do_v here_o affirm_v against_o this_o author_n and_o other_o who_o speak_v like_o he_o upon_o this_o subject_a that_o according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v three_o distinct_a relative_n modes_n of_o subsistence_n or_o three_o subsist_v relation_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a divine_a nature_n include_v in_o all_o and_o each_o of_o they_o or_o again_o they_o be_v the_o divine_a nature_n itself_o subsist_v with_o three_o distinct_a relation_n this_o i_o say_v i_o affirm_v and_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o to_o all_o man_n of_o sense_n it_o confute_v the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v three_o mere_a modes_n and_o show_v withal_o what_o a_o irrational_a blasphemous_a cavil_v it_o be_v to_o call_v they_o so_o for_o certain_o a_o mode_n in_o concretion_n with_o the_o essence_n can_v with_o the_o least_o pretence_n of_o reason_n be_v call_v a_o mere_a mode_n and_o this_o i_o do_v again_o avouch_v for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n concern_v the_o trinity_n and_o do_v over_o and_o over_o challenge_v this_o pert_a novellist_n to_o disprove_v it_o if_o he_o can_v but_o in_o the_o next_o place_n he_o be_v for_o confirm_v his_o tr●●●theistical_a assertion_n with_o this_o invincible_a argument_n as_o he_o think_v poor_a man_n p._n 8_o 9_o if_o say_v he_o every_o distinct_a person_n in_o the_o godhead_n consider_v as_o distinct_a be_v not_o a_o infinite_a and_o eternal_a mind_n as_o it_o must_v be_v if_o every_o distinct_a person_n be_v god_n unless_o any_o thing_n else_o than_o a_o infinite_a mind_n can_v be_v god_n then_o though_o it_o be_v a_o unusual_a way_n of_o speak_v to_o call_v they_o three_o eternal_a mind_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o heresy_n in_o it_o nor_o any_o intend_v by_o it_o in_o answer_n to_o which_o i_o must_v tell_v he_o that_o i_o shall_v not_o much_o concern_v myself_o about_o what_o he_o intend_v it_o be_v his_o old_a way_n when_o he_o be_v press_v with_o his_o word_n to_o fly_v to_o his_o intention_n but_o shall_v only_o consider_v what_o his_o word_n express_v or_o infer_v and_o whether_o they_o carry_v any_o heresy_n in_o they_o or_o no_o shall_v appear_v present_o and_o in_o order_n to_o this_o i_o must_v remind_v he_o of_o these_o two_o thing_n first_o that_o god_n and_o infinite_a eternal_a mind_n be_v term_n perfect_o equipollent_a and_o second_o that_o in_o term_n equipollent_a put_v one_o in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o other_o you_o may_v argue_v with_o the_o same_o consequence_n from_o one_o that_o you_o can_v from_o the_o other_o according_a to_o which_o rule_n we_o will_v try_v the_o force_n of_o his_o argument_n by_o propose_v it_o with_o the_o bare_a change_n of_o one_o of_o the_o forementioned_a term_n for_o the_o other_o thus._n if_o every_o distinct_a person_n in_o the_o godhead_n consider_v as_o distinct_a be_v god_n as_o it_o must_v be_v if_o every_o distinct_a person_n be_v a_o infinite_a and_o eternal_a mind_n unless_o any_o thing_n else_o than_o god_n can_v be_v a_o infinite_a mind_n then_o though_o it_o be_v a_o unusual_a way_n of_o speak_v to_o call_v they_o three_o god_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o heresy_n in_o it_o nor_o in_o spite_n of_o his_o word_n any_o intend_v by_o it_o now_o let_v this_o author_n consider_v how_o he_o will_v allow_v of_o this_o conclusion_n for_o if_o his_o own_o conclusion_n hold_v good_a this_o be_v certain_o good_a also_o since_o the_o validity_n of_o the_o consequence_n be_v the_o same_o in_o both_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o argument_n be_v the_o same_o and_o the_o form_n of_o it_o the_o same_o too_o there_o must_v be_v therefore_o a_o gross_a fallacy_n in_o the_o argument_n itself_o and_o it_o lie_v in_o the_o homonomy_n of_o the_o term_n as_n distinct_a for_o the_o english_a particle_n as_o and_o the_o latin_a quà_fw-la or_o quatenus_fw-la thus_o apply_v have_v two_o signification_n 1._o the_o first_o import_v any_o qualification_n specify_v affect_v or_o any_o way_n denominate_v the_o subject_a and_o so_o a_o person_n as_o distinct_a signify_v no_o more_o than_o a_o person_n who_o be_v distinct_a or_o a_o person_n under_o this_o qualification_n or_o denomination_n 2._o but_o second_o the_o other_o signification_n of_o the_o particle_n as_o be_v causal_n and_o import_v a_o causal_a connexion_n of_o the_o term_n to_o which_o it_o be_v join_v with_o some_o predicate_a or_o attribute_v belong_v to_o the_o subject_a and_o so_o a_o person_n as_o distinct_a signify_v as_o much_o as_o a_o person_n because_o distinct_a or_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o distinction_n and_o this_o make_v a_o attribute_n to_o be_v necessary_o and_o universal_o predicate_v of_o its_o subject_n so_o that_o if_o the_o subject_n be_v multiply_v the_o thing_n predicate_v of_o it_o must_v be_v multiply_v too_o but_o in_o the_o former_a signification_n of_o the_o particle_n as_o it_o be_v not_o so_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o predication_n import_v thereby_o be_v only_o accidental_a and_o have_v no_o causal_n necessary_a nor_o universal_a connexion_n with_o its_o subject_a according_o in_o the_o causal_n sense_n of_o the_o term_n as_n distinct_a i_o must_v tell_v he_o that_o no_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n as_n distinct_a be_v a_o infinite_a eternal_a mind_n that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o attribute_n belong_v not_o formal_o to_o his_o distinction_n and_o that_o his_o distinction_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n or_o reason_n that_o it_o be_v affirm_v of_o he_o for_o it_o be_v a_o attribute_n spring_a from_o the_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v in_o the_o person_n and_o not_o from_o his_o personality_n or_o personal_a distinction_n for_o as_o much_o as_o that_o do_v
not_o proper_o and_o formal_o make_v he_o to_o be_v god_n nor_o be_v that_o wherein_o his_o godhead_n do_v precise_o consist_v though_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o person_n include_v in_o he_o the_o nature_n it_o do_v indeed_o imply_v and_o suppose_v he_o to_o be_v god_n and_o thus_o all_o the_o ancient_a orthodox_n divine_v and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n distinguish_v in_o each_o person_n two_o thing_n though_o intimate_o and_o inseparable_o unite_v viz._n the_o godhead_n or_o divine_a nature_n and_o the_o personal_a distinguish_a relation_n so_o that_o what_o agree_v to_o the_o person_n upon_o one_o account_n do_v not_o proper_o belong_v to_o he_o upon_o the_o other_o and_o consequent_o to_o make_v the_o personal_a distinction_n the_o proper_a reason_n of_o any_o essential_a predication_n be_v utter_o false_a and_o illogical_a and_o according_o to_o say_v that_o infinite_a eternal_a mind_n which_o be_v a_o essential_a attribute_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n as_o such_o belong_v to_o any_o one_o person_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o personal_a distinction_n be_v false_a forasmuch_o as_o this_o will_v infer_v it_o to_o belong_v to_o that_o person_n only_o since_o his_o personal_a distinction_n belong_v only_o to_o himself_o it_o belong_v indeed_o to_o he_o though_o distinct_a but_o not_o because_o distinct_a but_o whole_o because_o of_o his_o divine_a nature_n which_o belong_v equal_o to_o all_o the_o divine_a person_n all_o the_o essential_a attribute_n of_o the_o say_a nature_n must_v equal_o belong_v to_o all_o the_o three_o person_n too_o from_o all_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o since_o infinite_a eternal_a mind_n be_v a_o attribute_v not_o spring_v from_o personal_a distinction_n even_o in_o distinct_a person_n nor_o agree_v to_o the_o say_a person_n upon_o that_o account_n but_o spring_v whole_o from_o that_o one_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v common_a to_o they_o all_o it_o can_v never_o infer_v the_o three_o person_n though_o distinct_a to_o be_v three_o infinite_a eternal_a mind_n since_o as_o i_o show_v before_o the_o connexion_n between_o a_o distinct_a person_n as_o the_o subject_a and_o between_o infinite_a mind_n as_o the_o predicate_v not_o be_v causal_n the_o multiplication_n of_o the_o subject_n can_v never_o infer_v the_o multiplication_n of_o the_o predicate_a and_o this_o i_o affirm_v to_o be_v a_o full_a and_o true_a account_n of_o this_o matter_n and_o a_o clear_a solution_n of_o the_o fallacy_n which_o this_o man_n be_v whole_a argument_n depend_v upon_o and_o consequent_o that_o his_o tritheistical_a hypothesis_n that_o the_o three_o distinct_a divine_a person_n must_v be_v therefore_o three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n or_o spirit_n be_v even_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n will_v he_o stand_v to_o it_o at_o a_o end_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v there_o be_v nothing_o in_o his_o whole_a book_n but_o pitiful_a wretched_a fallacy_n join_v with_o gross_a ignorance_n of_o the_o subject_a he_o write_v of_o from_o first_o to_o last_o and_o yet_o after_o all_o this_o he_o make_v his_o hypothesis_n the_o only_a rule_n to_o understand_v most_o of_o the_o scripture_n by_o which_o represent_v to_o we_o the_o union_n between_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o particular_o that_o about_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d express_v john_n 14._o v_o 11._o by_o the_o son_n be_v be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o the_o son_n for_o say_v he_o that_o the_o father_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n in_o the_o father_n so_o as_o perfect_o to_o comprehend_v and_o be_v comprehend_v with_o several_a like_o expression_n be_v make_v very_o possible_a and_o intelligible_a by_o a_o mutual_a conscious_a sensation_n but_o nothing_o else_o will_v afford_v we_o any_o conception_n of_o it_o def._n p._n 9_o to_o which_o i_o answer_v what_o if_o it_o do_v not_o and_o what_o christian_a be_v concern_v to_o have_v any_o such_o conception_n for_o do_v the_o catholic_n church_n ever_o pretend_v to_o any_o beyond_o the_o bare_a knowledge_n of_o the_o signification_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o term_n in_o which_o it_o be_v reveal_v and_o do_v not_o the_o bare_a revelation_n of_o it_o sufficient_o make_v out_o the_o possibility_n of_o it_o to_o we_o without_o any_o further_a explication_n what_o do_v this_o profane_a man_n mean_v thus_o to_o state_n the_o very_a possibility_n of_o a_o thing_n express_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n upon_o his_o new-found_a exposition_n of_o it_o so_o that_o unless_o this_o be_v admit_v we_o must_v even_o in_o spite_n of_o revelation_n look_v upon_o it_o as_o impossible_a good_a god_n whither_o be_v we_o run_v but_o to_o show_v moreover_o that_o his_o exposition_n be_v as_o force_v as_o new_a our_o saviour_n express_v this_o circumincession_n by_o word_n import_v mutual_a inexistence_n but_o say_v this_o man_n a_o man_n make_v it_o seem_v to_o correct_a revelation_n itself_o by_o put_v it_o into_o proper_a word_n that_o such_o a_o mutual_a inexistence_n can_v be_v conceive_v possible_a unless_o we_o understand_v it_o of_o mutual_a consciousness_n that_o be_v of_o quite_o another_o thing_n from_o what_o the_o word_n signify_v for_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o mutual_a inexistence_n be_v not_o mutual_a consciousness_n nor_o can_v mutual_a consciousness_n be_v mutual_a inexistence_n but_o in_o short_a will_v this_o man_n say_v that_o the_o mutual_a inexistence_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n understand_v according_o to_o the_o very_a letter_n imply_v in_o it_o a_o contradiction_n i_o question_v whether_o he_o will_v dare_v say_v so_o whatsoever_o the_o thing_n assert_v by_o he_o may_v infer_v for_o as_o for_o that_o pitiful_a objection_n against_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v comprehend_v another_o thing_n and_o be_v comprehend_v by_o it_o etc._n etc._n it_o be_v a_o mere_a toy_n found_v only_o in_o that_o old_a maxim_n omne_fw-la continens_fw-la est_fw-la majus_fw-la contento_fw-mi drawn_z off_o from_o material_a quantitative_a being_n and_o so_o not_o applicable_a to_o immaterial_a and_o spiritual_a as_o have_v be_v full_o show_v in_o the_o 9_o the_o chapter_n of_o the_o animadversion_n p._n 299_o and_o 300._o but_o if_o this_o author_n will_v not_o venture_v to_o say_v that_o such_o a_o mutual_a inexistence_n understand_v according_o to_o the_o letter_n imply_v in_o it_o a_o contradiction_n then_o let_v he_o give_v the_o church_n a_o satisfactory_a reason_n why_o our_o saviour_n word_n shall_v not_o be_v understand_v in_o their_o own_o natural_a proper_a sense_n but_o in_o this_o man_n be_v new_a sense_n which_o be_v both_o improper_a and_o figurative_a and_o never_o hear_v of_o before_o but_o with_o a_o bold_a front_n he_o say_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o speak_v of_o be_v not_o otherwise_o possible_a and_o intelligible_a which_o two_o word_n he_o be_v perpetual_o jumble_v together_o as_o if_o there_o may_v not_o be_v many_o thing_n possible_a and_o yet_o by_o humane_a reason_n not_o intelligible_a but_o i_o must_v here_o tell_v he_o what_o i_o dare_v say_v he_o know_v not_o before_o viz._n that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n positive_o to_o apprehend_v and_o know_v a_o thing_n not_o to_o be_v possible_a which_o i_o defy_v he_o to_o prove_v this_o mutual_a inexistence_n even_o understand_v literal_o not_o to_o be_v and_o another_o thing_n not_o to_o apprehend_v or_o know_v how_o or_o by_o what_o way_n a_o thing_n be_v possible_a and_o this_o latter_a i_o affirm_v aught_o never_o to_o supersede_n our_o assent_n to_o any_o thing_n if_o reveal_v to_o we_o nor_o to_o make_v we_o doubt_v of_o the_o revelation_n nor_o be_v we_o at_o all_o concern_v about_o any_o further_a explication_n of_o the_o thing_n so_o reveal_v nor_o whether_o we_o ever_o know_v any_o more_o of_o it_o or_o no_o and_o this_o be_v my_o opinion_n may_v serve_v a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d man_n which_o be_v but_o another_o word_n for_o a_o theological_a quack_n a_o great_a deal_n of_o trouble_n but_o so_o far_o be_v this_o man_n mutual-consciousness_n from_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n that_o can_v render_v this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d intelligible_a that_o unless_o a_o mutual_a inexistence_n be_v presuppose_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o mutual-consciousness_n can_v here_o take_v place_n since_o it_o be_v essential_o found_v in_o that_o for_o sure_o father_n and_o son_n must_v exist_v mutual_o in_o one_o another_o before_o they_o can_v know_v or_o be_v conscious_a to_o themselves_o that_o they_o do_v so_o but_o this_o point_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d have_v be_v so_o full_o debate_v and_o so_o thorough_o clear_v in_o the_o animadversion_n both_o in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n from_o page_n 201_o to_o the_o 207._o inclusive_o and_o in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n from_o page_n 295_o to_o 301._o that_o there_o need_v not_o to_o have_v be_v so_o much_o as_o one_o word_n say_v of_o it_o here_o but_o as_o
allege_v and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o i_o demand_v with_o what_o face_n he_o can_v reject_v the_o material_a representation_n make_v by_o the_o father_n of_o this_o mysterious_a union_n and_o give_v the_o world_n another_o of_o his_o own_o from_o a_o instance_n altogether_o as_o gross_a and_o material_a but_o withal_o impossible_a and_o unintelligible_a as_o shall_v appear_v in_o the_o process_n of_o what_o we_o have_v to_o say_v upon_o it_o but_o all_o this_o author_n write_n be_v such_o perfect_a antipode_n to_o themselves_o that_o no_o man_n who_o know_v he_o will_v expect_v to_o find_v he_o consistent_a with_o himself_o in_o any_o thing_n but_o to_o proceed_v i_o come_v now_o to_o examine_v whether_o this_o notion_n of_o a_o man_n and_o his_o live_a image_n have_v in_o it_o such_o a_o peculiar_a fitness_n as_o this_o author_n pretend_v to_o represent_v and_o explain_v to_o we_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o in_o order_n to_o it_o i_o shall_v lay_v down_o this_o assertion_n viz._n that_o a_o notion_n suppose_v a_o thing_n impossible_a and_o imply_v in_o it_o a_o contradiction_n to_o and_o inconsistency_n with_o itself_o can_v never_o explain_v any_o and_o much_o less_o the_o high_a mystery_n of_o our_o religion_n in_o order_n to_o the_o prove_v of_o which_o i_o shall_v consider_v three_o thing_n 1._o what_o a_o image_n in_o the_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n be_v 2._o what_o a_o image_n by_o reflection_n be_v 3._o what_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o a_o impossible_a supposition_n 1._o as_o to_o the_o first_o of_o which_o a_o image_n according_a to_o the_o general_a nature_n of_o it_o be_v such_o a_o likeness_n of_o a_o thing_n as_o both_o represent_v it_o and_o proceed_v from_o it_o and_o that_o either_o as_o from_o a_o principal_a efficient_a produce_v it_o or_o as_o from_o a_o causa_fw-la exempla●is_fw-la at_o least_o according_a to_o which_o it_o be_v produce_v which_o i_o add_v because_o of_o artificial_a image_n form_v according_a to_o and_o so_o proceed_v from_o that_o idea_n or_o pattern_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o artificer_n draw_v from_o the_o thing_n which_o the_o image_n design_v by_o he_o be_v to_o represent_v so_o that_o a_o image_n whether_o natural_a or_o artificial_a essential_o imply_v these_o two_o thing_n as_o the_o general_a condition_n of_o it_o viz._n a_o representation_n of_o and_o a_o production_n either_o by_o or_o from_o the_o thing_n represent_v by_o it_o 2._o second_o a_o image_n by_o reflection_n be_v when_o the_o visible_a species_n flow_v from_o any_o thing_n and_o strike_v upon_o some_o such_o body_n as_o glass_n water_n or_o polish_a metal_n be_v return_v back_o from_o thence_o and_o thereby_o represent_v the_o body_n which_o they_o original_o flow_v from_o and_o such_o a_o image_n this_o author_n here_o speak_v of_o for_o he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o man_n image_n by_o reflection_n 3._o in_o the_o three_o place_n a_o impossible_a supposition_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v so_o in_o a_o double_a respect_n first_o in_o respect_n of_o all_o natural_a second_a cause_n as_o exceed_v all_o the_o force_n and_o virtue_n of_o such_o cause_n to_o effect_v the_o thing_n so_o suppose_v and_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o the_o supposition_n of_o a_o thing_n impossible_a in_o this_o sense_n may_v have_v its_o use_n sometime_o to_o give_v we_o some_o light_n into_o and_o explication_n of_o other_o thing_n second_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v impossible_a in_o respect_n of_o a_o contradiction_n involve_v in_o it_o so_o that_o no_o power_n whatsoever_o can_v effect_v it_o and_o the_o supposition_n of_o such_o impossibles_fw-fr i_o affirm_v to_o be_v of_o no_o use_n for_o the_o explication_n of_o any_o thing_n whatsoever_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n can_v have_v no_o form_a conception_n of_o they_o and_o yet_o whatsoever_o help_v it_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o another_o thing_n must_v do_v it_o by_o be_v first_o know_v itself_o which_o thing_n premise_v let_v we_o now_o see_v what_o this_o author_n hold_v and_o assert_n concern_v this_o live_a image_n set_v up_o by_o he_o that_o we_o may_v hereby_o find_v whether_o it_o involve_v in_o it_o any_o contradiction_n or_o no_o and_o it_o will_v appear_v that_o he_o assert_v these_o three_o thing_n concern_v it_o 1._o that_o this_o live_a image_n by_o reflection_n have_v its_o whole_a and_o sole_a dependence_n upon_o the_o prototype_n 2._o that_o there_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o numerical_a humane_a nature_n both_o in_o the_o prototype_n and_o the_o image_n 3._o that_o the_o prototype_n and_o the_o image_n be_v two_o distinct_a person_n these_o thing_n i_o say_v he_o assert_n of_o his_o live_a image_n concern_v which_o i_o remark_n as_o follow_v 1._o that_o to_o assert_v a_o image_n by_o reflection_n to_o have_v its_o sole_a and_o total_a dependence_n upon_o the_o prototype_n as_o this_o author_n say_v it_o have_v while_o it_o have_v a_o equal_o necessary_a and_o essential_a dependence_n upon_o the_o body_n which_o it_o be_v reflect_v from_o be_v a_o contradiction_n 2._o to_o assert_v that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o particular_a humane_a nature_n subsist_v in_o two_o particular_a person_n local_o distant_a from_o one_o another_o as_o the_o prototype_n and_o the_o image_n be_v be_v a_o contradiction_n 3._o to_o assert_v that_o a_o image_n by_o reflection_n which_o be_v a_o be_v uncapable_a of_o subsist_v by_o itself_o be_v a_o complete_o subsist_v person_n endue_v with_o a_o humane_a nature_n and_o consequent_o consist_v of_o a_o humane_a soul_n and_o body_n be_v a_o contradiction_n and_o again_o for_o it_o to_o be_v a_o humane_a person_n endue_v with_o a_o humane_a nature_n as_o this_o author_n assert_n it_o be_v and_o yet_o not_o to_o consist_v of_o such_o a_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v another_o contradiction_n these_o absurdity_n and_o innumerable_a more_o derivable_a from_o they_o be_v all_o involve_a in_o this_o author_n notion_n of_o a_o live_a image_n by_o reflection_n have_v the_o same_o numerical_a humane_a nature_n with_o the_o man_n himself_o and_o have_v its_o sole_a dependence_n upon_o he_o and_o yet_o be_v a_o separate_a person_n from_o he_o but_o not_o to_o insist_v upon_o these_o absurdity_n at_o present_a which_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n must_v needs_o abhor_v and_o fly_v from_o yet_o since_o this_o notion_n be_v design_v to_o explain_v and_o represent_v to_o we_o the_o union_n or_o rather_o unity_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o divine_a nature_n sure_o there_o ought_v at_o least_o to_o be_v no_o gross_a disparity_n between_o this_o live_a image_n and_o the_o thing_n intend_v to_o be_v explain_v by_o it_o especial_o as_o to_o those_o particular_n wherein_o the_o resemblance_n must_v and_o aught_o to_o consist_v but_o whether_o this_o be_v so_o or_o no_o will_v appear_v from_o the_o follow_a comparison_n as_o first_o there_o be_v a_o mutual_o necessary_a existence_n both_o of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n so_o that_o the_o father_n can_v be_v no_o more_o without_o the_o son_n than_o the_o son_n without_o the_o father_n the_o relation_n be_v inseparable_a but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o the_o man_n and_o his_o image_n for_o the_o man_n may_v cease_v to_o be_v a_o prototype_n and_o subsist_v without_o the_o image_n though_o the_o image_n can_v subsist_v without_o the_o man._n second_o the_o son_n have_v a_o entire_a total_a dependence_n upon_o the_o father_n but_o so_o have_v not_o the_o image_n upon_o the_o prototype_n as_o depend_v as_o much_o on_o the_o body_n from_o which_o it_o be_v reflect_v as_o it_o do_v or_o can_v upon_o the_o man_n who_o it_o represent_v and_o perhaps_o more_o three_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v mutual_o in_o one_o another_o and_o that_o by_o a_o intimate_v inexistence_n as_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n express_o prove_v john_n 14.11_o but_o the_o prototype_n and_o the_o image_n can_v be_v in_o one_o another_o as_o be_v local_o distant_a from_o each_o other_o four_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n be_v only_o distinct_a but_o otherwise_o inseparable_o unite_v but_o the_o prototype_n and_o the_o image_n be_v so_o divide_v as_o to_o subsist_v in_o a_o actual_a separation_n from_o one_o another_o the_o place_n and_o vbi_fw-la of_o the_o one_o as_o we_o observe_v be_v not_o the_o place_n or_o vbi_fw-la of_o the_o other_o and_o now_o to_o sum_v up_o and_o draw_v the_o forego_n particular_n together_o let_v we_o on_o the_o one_o side_n suppose_v two_o person_n viz._n the_o eternal_a father_n and_o son_n and_o these_o first_o by_o a_o mutual_a necessity_n coexi_v and_o then_o one_o of_o they_o viz._n the_o son_n have_v his_o sole_a and_o total_a dependence_n upon_o the_o other_o and_o three_o both_o of_o they_o mutual_o
school-term_n in_o general_a i_o come_v in_o the_o second_o place_n to_o give_v some_o account_n also_o of_o that_o particular_a term_n the_o formal_a reason_n of_o a_o thing_n frequent_o make_v use_v of_o in_o the_o animadversion_n which_o though_o sufficient_o explain_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o they_o i_o shall_v however_o take_v into_o some_o further_a consideration_n since_o this_o author_n will_v fain_o avoid_v any_o argument_n couch_v under_o it_o by_o plead_v that_o the_o term_n itself_o be_v none_o of_o he_o which_o indeed_o be_v ready_o grant_v he_o but_o yet_o if_o he_o assert_v the_o thing_n as_o he_o often_o do_v and_o the_o animadverter_n put_v it_o for_o he_o into_o a_o proper_a scholastical_a term_n and_o so_o fit_v it_o the_o better_a for_o argumentation_n the_o term_n i_o assure_v he_o will_v affect_v he_o and_o his_o argument_n whether_o he_o will_v admit_v and_o make_v use_n of_o it_o or_o no_o for_o the_o animadverter_n will_v be_v judge_v by_o his_o reader_n who_o understand_v he_o and_o not_o by_o his_o adversary_n who_o do_v not_o well_o then_o by_z the_o formal_a reason_n of_o a_o thing_n the_o animadverter_n understand_v that_o internal_a principle_n which_o make_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v what_o it_o be_v and_o as_o unity_n inseparable_o attend_v be_v and_o distinction_n accompany_v unity_n the_o same_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o all_o these_o since_o that_o which_o internal_o make_v a_o thing_n such_o or_o such_o a_o be_v thereby_o also_o make_v it_o one_o in_o itself_o and_o distinguish_v it_o from_o all_o other_o thing_n beside_o for_o still_o according_a to_o all_o philosophy_n idem_fw-la est_fw-la principium_fw-la constitutivum_fw-la &_o distinctivum_fw-la so_o that_o as_o every_o thing_n be_v constitute_v in_o such_o a_o order_n of_o be_v by_o what_o it_o be_v so_o it_o be_v distinguish_v also_o by_o what_o it_o be_v from_o every_o thing_n which_o it_o be_v not_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o principle_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v call_v formal_a because_o it_o be_v the_o form_n take_v the_o word_n in_o its_o large_a sense_n as_o it_o comprehend_v also_o essence_n which_o make_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v of_o such_o a_o nature_n and_o withal_o give_v it_o unity_n distinction_n and_o denomination_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o account_n also_o the_o term_n reason_n be_v add_v to_o the_o term_n formal_a to_o show_v that_o this_o give_v the_o natural_a and_o proper_a answer_n to_o the_o question_n why_o a_o thing_n be_v such_o or_o such_o thus_o or_o thus_o as_o if_o for_o instance_n it_o shall_v be_v ask_v why_o or_o for_o what_o reason_n a_o beast_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o sensible_a creature_n the_o answer_n be_v because_o it_o have_v a_o internal_a principle_n of_o sense_n which_o render_v it_o so_o so_o that_o this_o principle_n of_o sense_n be_v the_o formal_a reason_n whereby_o it_o be_v both_o constitute_v and_o denominate_v sensible_a and_o the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o other_o thing_n in_o the_o like_a case_n this_o be_v the_o account_n which_o i_o give_v of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o term_n formal_a reason_n as_o it_o occur_v in_o the_o animadversion_n viz._n that_o it_o be_v that_o internal_a principle_n which_o make_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v one_o in_o itself_o and_o distinct_a from_o all_o other_o thing_n which_o it_o be_v not_o and_o last_o be_v the_o natural_a and_o proper_a answer_v to_o all_o inquiry_n à_fw-fr priore_n why_o or_o how_o a_o thing_n come_v to_o be_v essential_o such_o or_o such_o according_a to_o its_o respective_a denomination_n of_o all_o which_o this_o author_n be_v whole_o ignorant_a he_o think_v he_o have_v so_o entire_o clear_v himself_o of_o this_o term_n and_o whatsoever_o have_v be_v argue_v against_o he_o under_o it_o that_o he_o declare_v with_o triumph_n p._n 78._o l._n 10._o that_o if_o the_o animadverter_n think_v fit_a to_o try_v his_o skill_n again_o upon_o this_o argument_n he_o believe_v he_o shall_v hear_v no_o more_o of_o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o personality_n and_o union_n nor_o of_o other_o such_o like_a term●_n but_o this_o poor_a man_n shall_v remember_v how_o unhappy_a he_o have_v be_v in_o his_o prophecy_n for_o so_o he_o have_v say_v before_o both_o of_o the_o socinian_o and_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a answerer_n of_o the_o vindication_n of_o his_o case_n etc._n etc._n viz._n that_o he_o believe_v that_o he_o shall_v hear_v from_o they_o no_o more_o when_o yet_o he_o have_v hear_v from_o they_o both_o and_o that_o in_o a_o strain_n so_o much_o above_o his_o low_a talon_n that_o few_o believe_v that_o either_o of_o they_o will_v ever_o hear_v more_o from_o he_o and_o if_o ●s_v they_o say_v s●●ing_n be_v believe_v so_o f●●ling_v be_v bel●●ving_v too_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o by_o this_o time_n he_o himself_o also_o be_v o●_n the_o same_o opinion_n and_o according_o i_o do_v here_o assure_v this_o man_n of_o presumption_n that_o i_o shall_v produce_v this_o and_o the_o like_a term_n in_o all_o dispute_n with_o he_o again_o and_o again_o have_v herein_o the_o company_n of_o all_o the_o eminent_a scholastic_a writer_n both_o in_o philosophy_n and_o divinity_n constant_o use_v and_o avow_v the_o use_n of_o they_o and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o in_o the_o strength_n of_o they_o to_o break_v through_o all_o the_o co●●●b_a argumentation_n of_o this_o his_o sophistical_a and_o slight_a discourse_n and_o so_o i_o go_v on_o but_o before_o i_o come_v particular_o to_o examine_v his_o shift_a answer_n to_o the_o animadverter_n argument_n i_o think_v fit_a to_o lay_v before_o the_o reader_n the_o plain_a and_o true_a state_n of_o the_o point_n between_o this_o author_n and_o he_o as_o the_o most_o unexceptionable_a rule_n whereby_o the_o reader_n be_v desire_v to_o judge_v between_o they_o both_o now_o the_o chief_a head_n of_o dispute_n between_o they_o be_v these_o three_o first_o concern_v self-consciousness_n and_o what_o dependence_n the_o personality_n and_o personal_a unity_n of_o person_n both_o create_v and_o uncreate_v have_v upon_o it_o second_o touch_v mutual_a consciousness_n and_o how_o far_o the_o essential_a unity_n of_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o numerical_a divine_a nature_n depend_v upon_o it_o and_o three_o whether_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n or_o spirit_n or_o no._n concern_v all_o which_o several_o the_o reader_n be_v in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o observe_v that_o this_o author_n make_v self-consciousness_n both_o in_o being_n create_v and_o uncreate_v the_o formal_a reason_n of_o personality_n and_o personal_a unity_n viz._n that_o which_o make_v a_o person_n to_o be_v formal_o a_o person_n and_o formal_o one_o in_o himself_o or_o in_o other_o word_n that_o wherein_o his_o personal_a be_v unity_n and_o original_a distinction_n from_o other_o thing_n do_v consist_v and_o so_o in_o the_o next_o place_n for_o mutual_a consciousness_n he_o make_v the_o essential_a unity_n of_o nature_n or_o essence_n belong_v to_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n to_o consist_v formal_o in_o their_o mutual_a consciousness_n so_o that_o it_o be_v this_o which_o render_v they_o formal_o one_o in_o nature_n or_o essence_n and_o last_o he_o positive_o affirm_v that_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n in_o the_o godhead_n be_v three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n or_o spirit_n and_o that_o it_o be_v heresy_n and_o nonsense_n to_o affirm_v otherwise_o vind._n p._n 66._o l._n 25._o thus_o he_o hold_v and_o assert_n concern_v these_o three_o dispute_v point_n as_o will_v appear_v from_o the_o follow_a passage_n in_o his_o book_n concern_v each_o of_o they_o and_o 1._o for_o self-consciousness_n the_o self-vnity_n of_o a_o spirit_n say_v he_o universal_o by_o the_o way_n reckon_v a_o spirit_n a_o person_n can_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o self-consciousness_n viz._n that_o it_o be_v conscious_a to_o its_o own_o thought_n reason_n passion_n which_o no_o other_o spirit_n be_v conscious_a to_o but_o itself_o vind._n p._n 48._o l._n 32._o this_o make_v a_o spirit_n numerical_o one_o vind._n p._n 49._o l._n 2._o the_o self-consciousness_n of_o every_o person_n to_o itself_o viz._n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n make_v they_o three_o distinct_a person_n vind._n p._n 68_o l._n 5._o and_o we_o know_v no_o other_o unity_n of_o a_o mind_n or_o spirit_n but_o consciousness_n ibid._n the_o essential_a unity_n of_o a_o spirit_n consist_v in_o self-consciousness_n and_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o which_o make_v a_o spirit_n one_o and_o distinguish_v it_o from_o all_o other_o spirit_n vind._n p._n 47._o l._n 15._o the_o very_a nature_n of_o a_o spirit_n consist_v in_o internal_a vital_a sensation_n defence_n p._n 7._o l._n 11._o the_o unity_n of_o a_o single_a mind_n or_o spirit_n consist_v in_o a_o natural_a self-conscious_a sensation_n
compound_n viz._n the_o whole_a man_n or_o person_n as_o the_o subjectum_fw-la ultimum_fw-la and_o principium_fw-la quod_fw-la and_o as_o that_o which_o receive_v the_o whole_a denomination_n from_o what_o belong_v immediate_o to_o any_o part_n of_o it_o for_o it_o be_v the_o whole_a man_n or_o person_n who_o be_v proper_o say_v to_o be_v a_o live_n reasonable_a sensible_a creature_n though_o it_o be_v by_o virtue_n of_o his_o soul_n as_o the_o principium_fw-la quo_fw-la that_o he_o be_v so_o after_o this_o come_v another_o absurdity_n where_o he_o tell_v we_o p._n 48._o l._n 2._o that_o a_o hypostatical_a union_n be_v the_o swallow_v up_o of_o a_o natural_a personality_n in_o its_o union_n with_o a_o superior_a person_n which_o if_o it_o be_v so_o then_o say_v i_o where_o be_v the_o hypostatical_a union_n of_o christ_n person_n with_o the_o humane_a nature_n for_o the_o humane_a nature_n which_o be_v unite_v to_o his_o divine_a person_n have_v no_o personality_n of_o its_o own_o to_o be_v swallow_v up_o for_o christ_n assume_v it_o without_o any_o subsistence_n or_o personality_n belong_v to_o it_o which_o it_o neither_o have_v nor_o ever_o have_v and_o consequent_o can_v never_o be_v say_v to_o be_v lose_v or_o swallow_v up_o by_o this_o union_n so_o that_o we_o have_v a_o new_a sort_n of_o heresy_n start_v viz._n that_o as_o eutyches_n heretofore_o affirm_v christ_n humane_a nature_n to_o have_v be_v swallow_v up_o by_o his_o divine_a so_o this_o author_n hold_v a_o humane_a personality_n to_o have_v belong_v to_o this_o humane_a nature_n which_o in_o like_a manner_n be_v swallow_v up_o by_o the_o superior_a person_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o where_o these_o vile_a heterodoxy_n will_v stop_v god_n only_o know_v for_o i_o can_v see_v but_o this_o innovator_n may_v free_o and_o uncontrollable_o vent_v as_o many_o of_o they_o as_o he_o please_v and_o no_o doubt_n he_o have_v a_o great_a many_o more_o such_o in_o reserve_n and_o will_v in_o due_a time_n produce_v they_o but_o the_o animadverter_n have_v argue_v against_o the_o personality_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o conjunction_n with_o the_o body_n thus_o if_o the_o soul_n in_o the_o composition_n of_o a_o man_n person_n be_v a_o entire_a person_n itself_o and_o as_o such_o concur_v with_o the_o body_n towards_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o man_n than_o the_o man_n will_v be_v a_o imperfect_a accidental_a and_o not_o a_o perfect_a natural_a compound_v he_o will_v be_v that_o which_o philosophy_n call_v unum_n per_fw-la accidens_fw-la that_o be_v a_o thing_n make_v up_o of_o such_o being_n as_n can_v perfect_o coalesce_v and_o unite_v into_o one_o animadvers_fw-la p._n 75._o and_o what_o say_v he_o to_o this_o why_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n be_v vital_o unite_v and_o that_o the_o animadverter_n own_o belove_a philosophy_n never_o call_v thing_n vital_o unite_v unum_n per_fw-la accidens_fw-la to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o no_o create_a person_n ever_o be_v or_o can_v be_v vital_o unite_v to_o any_o be_v distinct_a from_o itself_o and_o therefore_o since_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o soul_n be_v vital_o unite_v to_o the_o body_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o soul_n shall_v be_v a_o person_n for_o this_o belove_a philosophy_n teach_v i_o that_o in_o create_a being_n there_n can_v be_v no_o vital_a union_n but_o between_o part_n and_o consequent_o that_o since_o there_o be_v a_o vital_a union_n between_o soul_n and_o body_n this_o soul_n and_o body_n must_v be_v unite_v as_o concurrent_a part_n of_o the_o same_o compound_v and_o this_o by_o this_o author_n favour_n must_v utter_o destroy_v his_o senseless_a notion_n of_o the_o personality_n of_o the_o soul_n since_o that_o which_o be_v a_o part_n can_v be_v a_o suppositum_fw-la or_o complete_o subsist_v nature_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o so_o can_v never_o be_v a_o person_n so_o that_o the_o animadverter_n argument_n stand_v good_a viz._n that_o in_o create_a being_n a_n entire_a person_n unite_v to_o a_o body_n will_v make_v a_o unum_n per_fw-la accidens_fw-la and_o consequent_o that_o a_o vital_a union_n between_o they_o will_v be_v impossible_a yet_o nevertheless_o since_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o there_o be_v actual_o such_o a_o vital_a union_n between_o soul_n and_o body_n it_o be_v upon_o the_o same_o account_n also_o as_o certain_a that_o the_o soul_n which_o must_v be_v one_o of_o the_o term_n of_o that_o union_n and_o by_o consequence_n a_o part_n can_v be_v a_o person_n so_o that_o all_o this_o be_v but_o a_o mere_a petitio_fw-la principii_fw-la first_o to_o suppose_v the_o soul_n a_o person_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a thing_n in_o dispute_n and_o then_o to_o say_v that_o its_o be_v vital_o unite_v to_o the_o body_n keep_v it_o from_o make_v a_o man_n that_o which_o we_o call_v vnum_fw-la per_fw-la accide●s_fw-la whereas_o it_o be_v affirm_v and_o argue_v against_o he_o that_o this_o very_a vital_a union_n of_o the_o soul_n with_o the_o body_n overthrow_v the_o soul_n personality_n as_o a_o thing_n which_o this_o union_n be_v utter_o inconsistent_a with_o in_o short_a the_o soul_n be_v be_v a_o person_n if_o it_o be_v so_o can_v never_o prove_v it_o vital_o unite_a to_o the_o body_n but_o its_o be_v vital_o so_o unite_v irrefragable_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v no_o person_n but_o he_o be_v now_o for_o confound_v the_o animadverter_n with_o two_o question_n but_o still_o in_o pursuit_n of_o the_o same_o point_n first_o whether_o the_o eternal_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d before_o the_o incarnation_n be_v a_o complete_a be_v which_o be_v ready_o answer_v in_o the_o affirmative_a that_o he_o be_v second_o whether_o the_o humane_a nature_n assume_v by_o he_o be_v a_o complete_a or_o incomplete_a be_v i_o answer_v that_o though_o it_o be_v a_o perfect_a nature_n yet_o since_o it_o be_v without_o a_o proper_a natural_a subsistence_n of_o its_o own_o it_o be_v upon_o that_o account_n a_o incomplete_a be_v but_o then_o i_o add_v that_o this_o be_v a_o peculiar_a and_o a_o supernatural_a case_n there_o be_v no_o other_o particular_a humane_a nature_n in_o the_o world_n without_o its_o particular_a proper_a subsistence_n but_o this_o alone_a which_o subsist_v whole_o by_o a_o borrow_a subsistence_n as_o be_v assume_v into_o that_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o now_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o the_o union_n between_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n which_o be_v vital_o unite_v as_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o whole_a humane_a person_n but_o the_o person_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o vital_o unite_v to_o the_o humane_a nature_n as_o to_o a_o part_n of_o it_o and_o though_o as_o i_o note_v before_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o a_o finite_a person_n to_o be_v vital_o unite_v to_o any_o other_o be_v distinct_a from_o itself_o yet_o a_o infinite_a person_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o person_n of_o our_o saviour_n may_v be_v unite_v to_o another_o distinct_a be_v or_o nature_n for_o this_o be_v neither_o a_o composition_n nor_o yet_o a_o natural_a union_n but_o to_o this_o our_o author_n very_o learned_o except_v and_o affirm_v the_o union_n between_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o humane_a nature_n to_o be_v a_o natural_a union_n and_o give_v this_o as_o a_o reason_n for_o it_o because_o it_o be_v a_o union_n of_o nature_n and_o that_o a_o union_n of_o nature_n be_v a_o natural_a union_n by_o whatsoever_o power_n it_o be_v do_v p._n 49._o in_o answer_n to_o which_o though_o i_o may_v say_v that_o this_o be_v not_o proper_o at_o least_o not_o immediate_o a_o union_n of_o nature_n but_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o humane_a nature_n which_o by_o and_o through_o the_o person_n come_v to_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o divine_a nature_n yet_o to_o let_v that_o pass_v i_o absolute_o deny_v both_o his_o proposition_n viz._n that_o the_o union_n between_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v a_o natural_a union_n and_o that_o all_o union_n of_o nature_n must_v be_v a_o natural_a union_n by_o what_o power_n soever_o it_o be_v wrought_v both_o which_o be_v absolute_o false_a forasmuch_o as_o a_o natural_a union_n be_v only_o that_o which_o be_v wrought_v by_o a_o natural_a cause_n or_o principle_n act_v according_a to_o the_o ordinary_a course_n and_o measure_n of_o nature_n which_o a_o union_n between_o two_o nature_n so_o vast_o disproportion_v as_o a_o finite_a and_o a_o infinite_a can_v never_o be_v effect_v by_o for_o will_v this_o man_n affirm_v that_o god_n by_o the_o ordinary_a exercise_n of_o that_o power_n by_o which_o he_o carry_v on_o the_o daily_a production_n of_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n and_o which_o be_v proper_o call_v nature_n unite_v the_o divine_a person_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d
not_o but_o the_o complaint_n of_o one_o and_o the_o scoff_v of_o the_o other_o will_v in_o a_o short_a time_n declare_v at_o present_a i_o shall_v only_o venture_v to_o say_v thus_o much_o that_o if_o this_o audacious_a innovator_n and_o abuser_n of_o our_o excellent_a religion_n shall_v after_o all_o these_o scandalous_a paradox_n escape_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n must_v not_o expect_v to_o escape_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o world_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o know_v no_o security_n that_o our_o religion_n have_v against_o such_o invader_n and_o invasion_n but_o this_o that_o though_o they_o get_v ten_o thousand_o imprimatur_n to_o introduce_v their_o new_a christianity_n among_o we_o yet_o thanks_o be_v to_o god_n there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o licens_v heresy_n into_o truth_n or_o nonsense_n into_o sense_n and_o so_o i_o now_o pass_v from_o hence_o to_o his_o pretend_a answer_n to_o some_o part_n of_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o animadversion_n but_o before_o i_o enter_v upon_o it_o it_o may_v be_v pleasant_a to_o observe_v how_o at_o the_o close_a of_o the_o precede_a dispute_n he_o beg_v his_o friend_n pardon_n for_o his_o long_a excursion_n upon_o this_o subject_a p._n 61._o l._n 14._o whereas_o before_o at_o his_o entrance_n upon_o the_o same_o he_o have_v declare_v that_o he_o will_v only_o make_v some_o short_a reflection_n upon_o it_o p._n 44._o l._n 26._o and_o now_o how_o short_a reflection_n can_v pass_v for_o a_o long_a excursion_n or_o a_o long_a excursion_n be_v true_o call_v short_a reflection_n i_o must_v confess_v i_o do_v not_o understand_v but_o catch_v this_o man_n out_o of_o a_o self-contradiction_n and_o you_o may_v as_o well_o expect_v to_o catch_v he_o out_o of_o himself_o but_o let_v we_o see_v what_o he_o say_v to_o the_o animadverter_n four_o chapter_n why_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o answer_n to_o itself_o though_o i_o hope_v not_o in_o this_o author_n way_n by_o contradict_v itself_o but_o how_o do_v this_o appear_v why_o because_o as_o he_o tell_v we_o it_o undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o self-consciousness_n be_v not_o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o personality_n in_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n nor_o say_v he_o do_v the_o dean_n say_v it_o be_v no_o do_v he_o not_o say_v it_o when_o it_o have_v be_v prove_v over_o and_o over_o to_o his_o face_n from_o his_o own_o word_n that_o he_o positive_o affirm_v self-consciousness_n to_o be_v that_o wherein_o their_o personal_a unity_n and_o distinction_n from_o all_o other_o do_v essential_o consist_v vindic._n pag._n 74._o and_o to_o be_v that_o which_o make_v i_o say_v make_v each_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n to_o be_v one_o in_o himself_o and_o distinct_a from_o all_o other_o pag._n 68_o vind._n and_o have_v affirm_v the_o three_o divine_a person_n to_o be_v three_o spirit_n do_v he_o not_o say_v that_o the_o self-vnity_n of_o a_o spirit_n can_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o self-consciousness_n vindic._n pag._n 48._o again_o do_v he_o not_o affirm_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o spirit_n consist_v in_o a_o internal_a self-sensation_a which_o he_o use_v only_o as_o another_o word_n for_o self-consciousness_n defence_n p._n 7._o nay_o and_o do_v he_o not_o repeat_v the_o same_o in_o several_a place_n of_o both_o his_o book_n as_o we_o have_v from_o several_a passage_n cite_v out_o of_o they_o before_o demonstrate_v and_o now_o what_o i_o pray_v do_v the_o animadverter_n or_o any_o one_o else_o pretend_v the_o formal_a reason_n of_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v but_o that_o which_o make_v it_o original_o and_o essential_o one_o with_o itself_o and_o distinct_a from_o all_o other_o thing_n or_o in_o other_o term_n that_o wherein_o the_o say_a unity_n and_o distinction_n do_v consist_v well_o but_o have_v thus_o see_v what_o this_o author_n have_v unsay_v let_v we_o see_v what_o it_o be_v that_o he_o do_v say_v why_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o question_n be_v only_o this_o whether_o three_o self-consciousnesses_a do_v not_o prove_v three_o person_n each_o of_o which_o be_v self-conscious_a to_o be_v real_o distinct_a from_o one_o another_o p._n 61._o l._n 28._o in_o answer_n to_o which_o i_o do_v earnest_o desire_v the_o observe_a reader_n to_o note_n first_o how_o shameless_o he_o falsify_v in_o this_o matter_n contradict_v his_o own_o most_o positive_a and_o frequent_o repeat_v assertion_n and_o then_o how_o utter_o he_o change_v the_o whole_a question_n for_o the_o question_n have_v be_v all_o along_o as_o appear_v from_o what_o have_v be_v so_o faithful_o quote_v and_o set_v down_o not_o what_o prove_v the_o divine_a person_n to_o be_v thus_o distinct_a but_o what_o make_v they_o so_o and_o will_v this_o man_n say_v that_o the_o prove_v of_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v thus_o and_o thus_o and_o the_o make_v it_o to_o be_v so_o be_v the_o same_o and_o beside_o suppose_v that_o self-consciousness_n may_v prove_v the_o divine_a person_n distinct_a yet_o it_o can_v prove_v they_o so_o only_o as_o a_o consequent_a note_n or_o sign_n not_o as_o the_o original_a cause_n or_o reason_n of_o that_o distinction_n or_o as_o a_o effect_n prove_v its_o cause_n not_o as_o a_o cause_n prove_v its_o effect_n for_o the_o person_n be_v original_o distinguish_v by_o its_o personal_a subsistence_n which_o subsistence_n be_v not_o owe_v to_o any_o act_n or_o principle_n of_o self-consciousness_n as_o shall_v be_v full_o prove_v against_o he_o in_o the_o vindication_n of_o the_o four_o argument_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o do_v here_o refer_v it_o to_o every_o man_n of_o sense_n to_o judge_v whether_o by_o this_o utter_a change_n of_o the_o question_n this_o author_n do_v not_o plain_o give_v up_o the_o whole_a thing_n here_o in_o dispute_n between_o he_o and_o his_o adversary_n and_o according_o we_o shall_v see_v how_o by_o the_o help_n of_o this_o and_o the_o like_a wretched_a evasion_n he_o endeavour_v to_o slink_v away_o from_o the_o animadverter_n 1._o first_o argument_n which_o be_v this_o no_o personal_a act_n can_v be_v the_o formal_a reason_n of_o personality_n in_o the_o person_n who_o act_n it_o be_v but_o self-consciousness_n be_v a_o personal_a act_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v the_o formal_a reason_n of_o personality_n this_o be_v the_o argument_n and_o what_o be_v the_o defender_n or_o rather_o the_o dean_n answer_n to_o it_o why_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o neither_o do_v he_o consider_v self-consciousness_n as_o a_o personal_a act_n nor_o assign_v it_o as_o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o personality_n to_o the_o first_o of_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v as_o manifest_v and_o barefaced_a a_o falsehood_n as_o any_o that_o he_o have_v utter_v and_o that_o if_o knowledge_n self-conscious_a feeling_n or_o sensation_n be_v act_n and_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o word_n than_o self-consciousness_n which_o he_o have_v constant_o express_v by_o the_o forementioned_a word_n be_v as_o true_o real_o and_o proper_o a_o act_n and_o nothing_o else_o as_o knowledge_n feel_v or_o sensation_n be_v or_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v acts._n and_o as_o for_o the_o other_o part_n of_o his_o answer_n viz._n that_o he_o do_v not_o assign_v self-consciousness_n for_o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o personality_n we_o have_v superabundant_o prove_v that_o he_o have_v plain_o and_o full_o assert_v the_o thing_n and_o we_o must_v pardon_v the_o poor_a untaught_a man_n for_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o word_n nevertheless_o he_o add_v that_o if_o we_o consider_v self-consciousness_n as_o a_o personal_a act_n though_o it_o can_v make_v the_o person_n yet_o it_o distinguish_v one_o person_n from_o another_o p._n 62._o l._n 21._o to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o nothing_o but_o that_o which_o make_v the_o person_n can_v original_o distinguish_v the_o person_n and_o consequent_o that_o self-consciousness_n distinguish_v one_o person_n from_o another_o only_a by_o a_o secondary_a or_o consequent_a distinction_n and_o for_o that_o reason_n can_v no_o more_o original_o distinguish_v than_o it_o can_v make_v the_o person_n as_o for_o instance_n a_o man_n bodily_a stature_n and_o dimension_n with_o a_o concurrence_n of_o all_o other_o accident_n belong_v to_o he_o do_v real_o distinguish_v he_o from_o other_o man_n but_o for_o all_o that_o they_o do_v not_o original_o distinguish_v he_o for_o it_o be_v only_o his_o individual_a numerical_a nature_n which_o do_v or_o can_v do_v that_o but_o it_o be_v worth_a observe_n how_o this_o ignorant_a man_n pursue_v his_o point_n viz._n that_o self-consciousness_n be_v that_o which_o give_v personal_a unity_n and_o distinction_n for_o say_v he_o by_o this_o actual_a self-consciousness_n every_o person_n feel_v himself_o to_o be_v himself_o and_o not_o to_o be_v another_o p._n 62._o l._n 23._o and_o be_v not_o this_o think_v we_o a_o demonstration_n yes_o no_o doubt_n it_o be_v
close_v his_o wretched_a trifle_a dodge_v answer_n to_o the_o animadverter_n argument_n with_o thus_o say_v he_o all_o his_o argument_n vanish_v like_o smoke_n rise_v in_o a_o dark_a cloud_n but_o immediate_o disperse_v and_o be_v see_v no_o more_o till_o they_o return_v as_o such_o vapour_n use_v to_o do_v in_o thunder_n and_o lightning_n or_o some_o threaten_v storm_n p._n 87._o at_o the_o end_n but_o be_v there_o ever_o such_o a_o rhodomontade_fw-la in_o word_n so_o big_a with_o nothing_o and_o without_o one_o grain_n of_o sense_n at_o the_o bottom_n of_o they_o for_o be_v this_o the_o way_n to_o expose_v a_o adversarie_n argument_n to_o contempt_n first_o to_o represent_v it_o as_o vanish_v into_o smoke_n and_o vapour_n and_o afterward_o return_v in_o storm_n and_o thunder_n but_o it_o show_v that_o his_o rhetoric_n keep_v pace_n with_o his_o logic_n and_o that_o whether_o he_o will_v describe_v or_o prove_v a_o thing_n it_o be_v much_o at_o the_o same_o rate_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o reader_n may_v take_v this_o for_o a_o observation_n that_o will_v never_o fail_v he_o viz._n that_o this_o author_n be_v never_o so_o high_a upon_o the_o huff_n and_o rant_n as_o when_o he_o be_v low_a nay_o and_o know_v himself_o low_a in_o point_n of_o reason_n and_o so_o i_o pass_v to_o the_o vindication_n of_o the_o 2._o second_o argument_n which_o be_v this_o if_o unity_n of_o nature_n in_o the_o divine_a person_n be_v the_o cause_n reason_n or_o principle_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n in_o the_o say_a person_n than_o their_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n or_o principle_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o their_o nature_n but_o the_o former_a be_v true_a and_o therefore_o the_o latter_a be_v so_o too_o this_o be_v the_o argument_n and_o a_o plain_a and_o clear_a there_o can_v well_o be_v to_o which_o our_o author_n answer_v thus_o that_o the_o divine_a person_n may_v be_v thus_o essential_o one_o by_o mutual_a consciousness_n or_o mutual_a consciousness_n may_v be_v essential_a to_o this_o unity_n though_o they_o can_v not_o be_v thus_o actual_o conscious_a to_o each_o other_o unless_o they_o be_v thus_o unite_v as_o to_o have_v and_o to_o feel_v each_o other_o in_o themselves_o def._n p._n 68_o l._n 22._o which_o enigmatical_a obscure_a and_o confuse_a stuff_n if_o the_o reader_n understand_v it_o be_v well_o for_o i_o profess_v that_o i_o do_v not_o but_o so_o far_o as_o the_o term_n essential_a make_v use_v of_o here_o may_v seem_v to_o make_v any_o thing_n for_o his_o purpose_n i_o answer_v that_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o three_o person_n not_o as_o that_o wherein_o this_o unity_n do_v consist_v but_o as_o that_o which_o be_v essential_o consequent_a upon_o it_o and_o inseparable_a from_o it_o so_o that_o there_o be_v a_o homonymy_n in_o the_o term_n essential_a as_o either_o import_v that_o essential_a principle_n wherein_o the_o nature_n or_o essence_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v place_v or_o some_o thing_n necessary_o result_v from_o it_o in_o which_o latter_a sense_n alone_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o if_o by_o unity_n of_o nature_n in_o the_o divine_a person_n the_o animadverter_n mean_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o say_v be_v indeed_o a_o necessary_a foundation_n of_o this_o mutual_a consciousness_n but_o not_o the_o immediate_a cause_n of_o it_o for_o that_o the_o father_n he_o pretend_v be_v sensible_a that_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d can_v not_o of_o itself_o make_v this_o essential_a unity_n and_o therefore_o add_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o he_o affirm_v to_o be_v that_o very_o mutual_a consciousness_n here_o maintain_v by_o he_o to_o perfect_v it_o p._n 68_o l._n 27._o in_o which_o word_n there_o be_v several_a very_o vile_a heterodoxye_n for_o first_o i_o affirm_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d adequate_o perfect_o and_o sufficient_o make_v the_o unity_n and_o identity_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o divine_a person_n and_o that_o as_o i_o have_v already_o show_v not_o mere_o from_o the_o force_n of_o the_o word_n itself_o but_o from_o the_o peculiar_a condition_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o it_o be_v apply_v to_o which_o be_v infinite_a can_v not_o possible_o be_v otherwise_o than_o numerical_o one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o consequent_o that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o agreement_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n in_o such_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o numerical_a unity_n and_o identity_n of_o nature_n belong_v to_o they_o upon_o that_o account_n and_o therefore_o i_o deny_v that_o the_o father_n ever_o reckon_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d insufficient_a of_o itself_o to_o make_v this_o unity_n and_o challenge_v he_o to_o prove_v they_o do_v and_o i_o deny_v further_o that_o they_o ever_o allege_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o a_o addition_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o perfect_v this_o unity_n but_o as_o a_o explication_n and_o illustration_n of_o it_o and_o i_o add_v moreover_o that_o the_o father_n never_o account_v this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d either_o to_o be_v mutual_a consciousness_n or_o to_o consist_v in_o it_o but_o to_o be_v the_o mutual_a inexistence_n or_o indwell_v of_o the_o divine_a person_n in_o each_o other_o found_v upon_o and_o result_v from_o their_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mutual_a inexistence_n be_v no_o more_o mutual_a consciousness_n than_o bare_a existence_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v knowledge_n and_o last_o i_o affirm_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ascribe_v to_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n to_o which_o this_o author_n may_v add_v his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d too_o if_o he_o please_v be_v not_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d itself_o but_o a_o consequent_a or_o effect_v of_o it_o for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v not_o therefore_o in_o one_o another_o because_o they_o mutual_o know_v one_o another_o but_o they_o thus_o know_v one_o another_o because_o by_o the_o essential_a identity_n of_o their_o nature_n they_o mutual_o be_v and_o exist_v in_o one_o another_o all_o which_o have_v be_v so_o full_o prove_v in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o animadv_n p._n 201_o 202_o 203_o 204_o 205_o 206._o and_o the_o nine_o chapter_n p._n 295._o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o and_o 300_o 301._o to_o allege_v it_o again_o be_v in_o effect_n but_o dictum_fw-la dicere_fw-la which_o though_o it_o be_v the_o constant_a practice_n or_o rather_o trade_n of_o this_o author_n be_v the_o scorn_n of_o the_o animadverter_n but_o to_o go_v on_o the_o animadverter_n have_v say_v as_o be_v here_o allege_v that_o unity_n of_o nature_n be_v the_o cause_n and_o principle_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n which_o be_v a_o essential_a property_n equal_o belong_v to_o all_o three_o person_n must_v issue_v and_o result_v from_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o so_o can_v have_v no_o antecedent_n causal_n influx_n upon_o the_o same_o nature_n our_o author_n in_o answer_n to_o this_o tell_v we_o that_o mutual_a consciousness_n belong_v not_o immediate_o to_o nature_n but_o to_o person_n p._n 69._o l._n 20._o and_o i_o dare_v say_v he_o tell_v we_o the_o best_a he_o know_v but_o in_o reply_n to_o it_o i_o must_v tell_v he_o again_o that_o it_o belong_v immediate_o to_o both_o but_o upon_o a_o different_a account_n viz._n to_o nature_n as_o the_o immediate_o produce_v principle_n of_o the_o act_n and_o to_o the_o person_n as_o to_o the_o immediate_a proper_a subject_n of_o denomination_n from_o the_o act._n but_o he_o add_v that_o he_o for_o his_o part_n will_v not_o philosophy_n upon_o antecedent_n causal_a influx_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n p._n 69._o l._n 24._o nor_o do_v any_o one_o else_o in_o the_o strict_a proper_a and_o philosophical_a sense_n of_o these_o term_n pretend_v to_o do_v so_o but_o only_o by_o accommodate_v they_o to_o help_v we_o with_o the_o better_a method_n and_o distinction_n to_o conceive_v and_o discourse_v of_o so_o high_a a_o subject_a as_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o for_o nothing_o that_o he_o pass_v over_o the_o nine_o preliminary_a consideration_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o animadversion_n without_o so_o much_o as_o touch_v upon_o they_o for_o they_o will_v have_v correct_v his_o ignorance_n and_o teach_v he_o how_o these_o word_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o use_v about_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o person_n but_o his_o modesty_n add_v that_o it_o content_v he_o to_o know_v what_o be_v essential_a not_o absolute_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a
nature_n but_o to_o the_o unity_n in_o trinity_n p._n 69._o l._n 29._o and_o will_v this_o man_n say_v that_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v essential_a to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o one_o which_o be_v not_o as_o essential_a to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o other_o for_o though_o we_o frequent_o use_v the_o word_n union_n of_o person_n yet_o strict_o speak_v it_o be_v improper_a since_o it_o be_v not_o a_o union_n which_o be_v but_o another_o word_n for_o vnition_n but_o a_o unity_n of_o person_n in_o nature_n or_o a_o unity_n of_o nature_n in_o the_o person_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a expression_n and_o therefore_o we_o neither_o say_v a_o union_n in_o trinity_n nor_o a_o trinity_n in_o union_n but_o always_o apply_v the_o word_n unity_n to_o both_o but_o our_o author_n close_v this_o paragraph_n with_o these_o word_n p._n 69._o at_o the_o end_n that_o if_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v essential_a to_o this_o unity_n of_o nature_n so_o that_o the_o three_o person_n be_v thus_o unite_v and_o can_v be_v one_o without_o it_o he_o will_v contend_v no_o further_o and_o so_o far_o i_o think_v he_o do_v discreet_o but_o too_o late_a for_o whether_o he_o will_v contend_v further_o or_o no_o his_o adversary_n both_o do_v and_o will_v for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o author_n have_v assert_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o than_o what_o this_o concession_n amount_v to_o and_o if_o he_o do_v not_o prove_v all_o that_o he_o have_v assert_v he_o be_v a_o baffle_a person_n for_o he_o have_v positive_o assert_v as_o we_o have_v show_v from_o his_o own_o word_n that_o mutual_a consciousness_n make_v the_o three_o divine_a person_n to_o be_v natural_o one_o p._n 66._o def._n 26._o and_o to_o be_v essential_o one_o god_n vind._n p._n 68_o l._n 6._o and_o this_o by_o his_o favour_n be_v quite_o another_o thing_n from_o only_o assert_v that_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v essential_a to_o that_o unity_n of_o nature_n which_o be_v in_o the_o three_o person_n for_o that_o it_o may_v be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o essential_a consequent_a of_o the_o say_a unity_n of_o nature_n and_o no_o more_o as_o also_o from_o assert_v as_o he_o here_o do_v p._n 69._o l._n the_o last_o that_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n can_v be_v one_o without_o it_o for_o sure_o that_o which_o be_v only_o a_o conditio_fw-la sine_fw-la quâ_fw-la non_fw-la and_o without_o which_o the_o say_v divine_a person_n can_v be_v one_o in_o nature_n and_o that_o which_o formal_o make_v they_o so_o or_o wherein_o their_o unity_n do_v consist_v be_v whole_o different_a thing_n and_o therefore_o since_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o this_o man_n have_v no_o logic_n i_o hearty_o wish_v that_o he_o have_v some_o shame_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o be_v for_o show_v as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v how_o the_o animadverter_n mistake_v the_o whole_a matter_n in_o these_o word_n quote_v from_o he_o anim._n p._n 108._o l._n 14._o the_o divine_a nature_n or_o essence_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o all_o the_o three_o person_n there_o be_v upon_o this_o account_n one_o and_o the_o same_o knowledge_n in_o they_o also_o and_o they_o be_v not_o one_o in_o nature_n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o mutual_a consciousness_n but_o they_o be_v therefore_o mutual_o conscious_a because_o the_o perfect_a unity_n and_o identity_n of_o their_o nature_n make_v they_o so_o thus_o the_o animadverter_n and_o where_o be_v now_o the_o mistake_n why_o our_o author_n tell_v we_o that_o three_o person_n who_o have_v the_o same_o nature_n may_v know_v the_o same_o thing_n without_o feel_v one_o another_o thought_n and_o knowledge_n in_o themselves_o p._n 70._o l._n 22._o to_o which_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o foundation_n of_o this_o reply_n be_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o feel_v in_o god_n distinct_a from_o knowledge_n which_o be_v the_o height_n of_o nonsense_n and_o absurdity_n as_o shall_v be_v declare_v before_o we_o pass_v from_o this_o head_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n second_o i_o utter_o deny_v that_o person_n who_o have_v the_o same_o divine_a nature_n can_v know_v the_o same_o thing_n i_o mean_v all_o the_o same_o thing_n for_o that_o only_a here_o can_v be_v insist_v upon_o without_o know_v each_o other_o thought_n and_o knowledge_n in_o themselves_o for_o as_o much_o as_o whatsoever_o each_o of_o these_o divine_a person_n know_v he_o do_v and_o must_v know_v by_o a_o infinite_a act_n of_o knowledge_n comprehend_v both_o himself_o and_o the_o other_o two_o person_n and_o all_o that_o be_v knowable_a in_o the_o world_n beside_o and_o how_o each_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n can_v know_v all_o this_o without_o mutual_o know_v one_o another_o i_o desire_v this_o man_n to_o show_v but_o he_o argue_v further_a that_o if_o by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o knowledge_n the_o animadverter_n mean_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o three_o person_n be_v but_o one_o individual_a act_n as_o the_o knowledge_n of_o one_o single_a person_n be_v this_o destroy_v the_o distinction_n of_o person_n which_o can_v be_v distinct_a without_o distinct_a personal_a act_n as_o mutual_a knowledge_n be_v and_o destroy_v mutual_a consciousness_n for_o there_o be_v no_o place_n for_o mutual_a consciousness_n or_o mutual_a knowledge_n where_o there_o be_v but_o one_o single_a act_n of_o knowledge_n p._n 70._o l._n 24._o in_o answer_n to_o which_o i_o observe_v these_o two_o notable_a instance_n of_o his_o great_a ignorance_n first_o his_o suppose_n and_o take_v for_o grant_v the_o very_a thing_n in_o dispute_n between_o he_o and_o his_o adversary_n viz._n that_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n depend_v upon_o certain_a distinct_a act_n of_o knowledge_n as_o the_o cause_n or_o antecedent_n reason_n of_o that_o distinction_n whereas_o his_o adversary_n on_o the_o contrary_n affirm_v all_o distinction_n of_o divine_a knowledge_n as_o well_o as_o all_o diversification_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n itself_o to_o be_v from_o the_o distinction_n or_o distinct_a subsistence_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n as_o the_o prime_n and_o original_a reason_n of_o it_o and_o whereas_o this_o author_n say_v again_o that_o the_o divine_a person_n can_v be_v distinct_a without_o distinct_a personal_a act_n as_o mutual_a knowledge_n be_v it_o be_v true_a that_o they_o can_v be_v without_o they_o as_o inseparable_o consequent_a upon_o their_o personal_a distinction_n but_o not_o as_o constituent_v of_o it_o second_o the_o other_o instance_n of_o his_o ignorance_n here_o be_v his_o affirm_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o place_n for_o mutual_a consciousness_n or_o knowledge_n where_o there_o be_v but_o one_o single_a or_o individual_a act_n of_o knowledge_n which_o i_o utter_o deny_v as_o false_a and_o in_o order_n to_o the_o prove_v it_o so_o i_o do_v here_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o single_a act_n of_o knowledge_n in_o all_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n that_o be_v to_o say_v single_a as_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o act_n though_o diversify_v by_o the_o several_a modification_n which_o it_o receive_v from_o the_o person_n who_o it_o proceed_v from_o and_o from_o the_o several_a respect_n it_o bear_v to_o the_o several_a object_n it_o terminate_v upon_o which_o different_a modification_n and_o respect_n do_v by_o no_o mean_n infer_v diverse_a or_o distinct_a act_n of_o knowledge_n but_o only_o various_o modify_v determine_v and_o distinguish_v one_o and_o the_o same_o act._n according_o in_o the_o present_a case_n i_o do_v here_o affirm_v to_o this_o author_n that_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o act_n of_o divine_a knowledge_n different_o modify_v as_o it_o proceed_v several_o and_o after_o a_o different_a manner_n from_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o person_n know_v and_o joint_o terminate_v in_o they_o all_o as_o the_o object_n know_v as_o on_o the_o other_o side_n self-consciousness_n be_v no_o more_o than_o this_o one_o and_o the_o same_o act_n of_o knowledge_n as_o it_o issue_v only_o from_o one_o of_o the_o person_n and_o terminate_v upon_o the_o same_o too_o though_o i_o confess_v if_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v three_o distinct_a mind_n or_o spirit_n mutual_a consciousness_n can_v not_o be_v one_o act_n only_o but_o must_v be_v three_o this_o i_o hold_v concern_v the_o divine_a knowledge_n and_o the_o respective_a distinction_n of_o it_o and_o i_o leave_v this_o author_n to_o try_v his_o best_a skill_n in_o divinity_n and_o philosophy_n to_o confute_v it_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o give_v we_o one_o absurdity_n more_o out_o of_o his_o inexhaustible_a stock_n viz._n that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ascribe_v by_o the_o father_n to_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v that_o very_a mutual_a consciousness_n which_o the_o dean_n mean_v for_o these_o be_v his_o word_n p._n 7._o
his_o criticism_n with_o that_o have_v the_o dea●_n be_v please_v to_o have_v return_v mutual_a act_n he_o and_o the_o animadverter_n may_v have_v be_v long_o since_o in_o a_o very_a strict_a communion_n with_o each_o other_o p._n 73._o l._n 16._o i_o shall_v only_o return_v he_o this_o one_o short_a word_n that_o though_o all_o this_o may_v be_v perfect_a riddle_n to_o the_o reader_n yet_o i_o understand_v he_o very_o well_o and_o can_v easy_o give_v he_o such_o a_o answer_n as_o shall_v make_v he_o understand_v himself_o too_o but_o to_o let_v the_o reader_n see_v that_o he_o be_v a_o foul_a a_o disputant_n as_o he_o can_v be_v a_o speaker_n and_o a_o foul_a upon_o both_o account_v the_o world_n never_o have_v with_o a_o frontless_a impudence_n he_o declare_v here_o p._n 73._o l._n 23._o that_o the_o animadverter_n grant_v all_o that_o he_o say_v about_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o trinity_n in_o unity_n and_o in_o particular_a that_o every_o individual_a person_n have_v a_o self-consciousness_n of_o its_o own_o and_o every_o such_o self-conscious_a person_n be_v thereby_o one_o with_o itself_o and_o distinguish_v from_o all_o other_o person_n in_o answer_n to_o which_o shameless_a unconscionable_a falsehood_n i_o do_v here_o in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o world_n challenge_v the_o author_n of_o it_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o animadverter_n grant_v any_o one_o thing_n that_o be_v peculiar_a to_o his_o hypothesis_n and_o particular_o to_o show_v that_o place_n in_o the_o whole_a book_n of_o the_o animadversion_n in_o which_o the_o animadverter_n own_v that_o a_o self-conscious_a person_n be_v by_o virtue_n of_o its_o self-consciousness_n one_o with_o itself_o and_o primary_o distinguish_v from_o all_o other_o person_n which_o be_v the_o only_a distinction_n here_o speak_v of_o i_o say_v i_o do_v again_o and_o again_o challenge_v this_o man_n to_o prove_v this_o and_o promise_v withal_o that_o if_o he_o can_v do_v it_o i_o will_v forfeit_v to_o he_o more_o than_o ever_o he_o be_v bear_v to_o and_o if_o he_o can_v i_o humble_o appeal_v to_o the_o most_o rigid_a if_o but_o impartial_a reader_n whether_o i_o have_v not_o all_o the_o cause_n in_o the_o world_n to_o proclaim_v he_o to_o all_o mankind_n for_o a_o downright_a liar_n slanderer_n and_o falsificator_n and_o as_o hard_o as_o these_o word_n may_v sound_v less_o than_o this_o upon_o such_o a_o occasion_n i_o neither_o can_v nor_o will_v say_v but_o we_o will_v see_v what_o other_o hole_n he_o can_v pick_v in_o the_o animadverter_n coat_n and_o here_o he_o first_o tax_v he_o p._n 74._o l._n 1_o 2._o for_o the_o improper_a use_n of_o the_o term_n union_n of_o nature_n tell_v he_o that_o the_o dean_n forsooth_o will_v have_v say_v unity_n of_o nature_n as_o the_o same_o dean_n not_o only_a will_v have_v say_v but_o have_v say_v that_o a_o beast_n be_v a_o person_n with_o several_a other_o such_o choice_a propriety_n as_o chrism_n instead_o of_o chrism_n and_o paraphrase_n instead_o of_o periphrasis_n and_o above_o a_o hundred_o solecism_n to_o boot_v but_o i_o must_v here_o declare_v to_o this_o great_a master_n of_o proper_a speak_n forsooth_o as_o appear_v from_o the_o whole_a ten_o chapter_n of_o the_o animadversion_n that_o have_v the_o animadverter_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o he_o use_v the_o term_n union_n instead_o of_o unity_n which_o upon_o this_o subject_n be_v often_o promiscuous_o make_v use_n of_o sure_o this_o man_n have_v be_v the_o most_o unfit_a person_n in_o the_o world_n to_o reflect_v upon_o he_o for_o it_o who_o have_v state_v the_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o three_o person_n so_o as_o to_o leave_v no_o numerical_a real_a unity_n in_o it_o at_o all_o but_o only_o a_o union_n instead_o thereof_o for_o three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n assert_v by_o this_o author_n be_v three_o distinct_a nature_n or_o essence_n neither_o have_v nor_o can_v have_v any_o such_o unity_n in_o they_o but_o be_v unite_v only_o by_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v capable_a of_o no_o more_o than_o a_o conjunction_n or_o union_n thereby_o and_o that_o a_o very_a slender_a one_o too_o and_o far_o from_o that_o essential_a unity_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o divine_a person_n but_o after_o all_o i_o will_v have_v his_o critical_a ignorance_n know_v that_o the_o animadverter_n by_o the_o union_n of_o nature_n here_o mention_v understand_v as_o he_o may_v very_o well_o and_o proper_o do_v no_o other_o than_o a_o union_n in_o respect_n of_o nature_n so_o that_o it_o be_v real_o a_o union_n of_o person_n connote_v the_o nature_n as_o the_o term_n which_o they_o be_v unite_v in_o and_o according_o the_o animadverter_n in_o defiance_n of_o this_o man_n be_v long_a silly_a parenthesis_n which_o it_o have_v be_v more_o for_o his_o credit_n to_o have_v spare_v than_o put_v in_o still_o own_v and_o abide_v by_o the_o expression_n but_o our_o critic_n have_v not_o do_v yet_o but_o whereas_o the_o animadverter_n speak_v of_o the_o divine_a person_n have_v use_v these_o word_n their_o essence_n and_o personality_n he_o here_o cry_v out_o like_o one_o big_a and_o bring_v forth_o nothing_o what_o but_o one_o personality_n as_o well_o as_o but_o one_o essence_n in_o three_o p._n 74._o l._n 11._o but_o may_v it_o please_v your_o ignorance_n good_a sir_n the_o animadverter_n here_o speak_v of_o personality_n not_o with_o any_o respect_n to_o number_n of_o particular_n but_o to_o the_o common_a nature_n and_o notion_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o consequent_o may_v without_o the_o least_o impropriety_n use_v the_o term_n personality_n without_o any_o epithet_n of_o plurality_n for_o suppose_v that_o in_o a_o discourse_n of_o the_o general_a nature_n of_o celestial_a body_n one_o shall_v speak_v of_o the_o sun_n and_o of_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o heaven_n together_o will_v this_o philosopher_n of_o goatham_n present_o cry_v out_o what_o but_o one_o motion_n of_o the_o heaven_n as_o well_o as_o but_o one_o sun_n and_o to_o give_v a_o instance_n in_o divine_a matter_n when_o the_o prophet_n ezek._n 36.26_o tell_v the_o israelite_n that_o god_n will_v give_v they_o a_fw-la new_a heart_n will_v this_o wise_a man_n of_o the_o forename_a society_n cry_v out_o here_o what_o but_o one_o new_a heart_n among_o so_o many_o thousand_o man_n for_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o strict_o speak_v the_o heart_n here_o mention_v which_o can_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o pious_a and_o gracious_a disposition_n of_o mind_n incline_v they_o to_o obey_v god_n be_v to_o be_v multiply_v according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o individual_n which_o it_o be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o but_o such_o as_o understand_v the_o force_n of_o word_n and_o the_o way_n of_o use_v they_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o grammatica_fw-la philosophica_fw-la by_o which_o we_o may_v judge_v when_o a_o single_a word_n ought_v to_o signify_v singular_o and_o when_o indefinite_o and_o include_v all_o the_o particular_n that_o it_o may_v be_v apply_v to_o but_o this_o i_o confess_v be_v gibberish_n and_o a_o riddle_n as_o all_o sense_n and_o learning_n be_v to_o one_o who_o have_v neither_o grammar_n nor_o philosophy_n and_o so_o have_v answer_v his_o impertinent_a cavil_n i_o come_v to_o give_v a_o answer_n to_o his_o equal_o impertinent_a question_n with_o such_o great_a huff_n propose_v by_o he_o p._n 74._o l._n 17._o as_o first_o can_v they_o viz._n the_o divine_a person_n be_v one_o before_o they_o be_v mutual_o conscious_a even_o in_o the_o order_n of_o conceive_v it_o i_o answer_v that_o in_o order_n of_o conception_n they_o not_o only_o may_v but_o necessary_o must_v and_o that_o as_o necessary_o as_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o conceive_v of_o ●●owledge_n without_o conceive_v of_o entity_n or_o be_v as_o the_o ●bject_n of_o it_o and_o for_o that_o cause_n in_o the_o natural_a order_n of_o ●●●ceiving_v or_o apprehend_v thing_n before_o it_o the_o second_o question_n be_v can_v the_o divine_a person_n be_v one_o before_o they_o be_v in_o one_o another_o i_o answer_v that_o in_o priority_n of_o time_n they_o can_v but_o that_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n they_o may_v and_o must_v be_v so_o conceive_v for_o to_o be_v in_o one_o another_o be_v but_o a_o subsequent_a circumstance_n of_o be_v and_o consequent_o must_v presuppose_v the_o be_v itself_o whereof_o it_o be_v the_o circumstance_n as_o in_o nature_n precede_v it_o his_o three_o question_n be_v can_v there_o be_v any_o other_o mutual_a in-being_a of_o mind_n but_o by_o mutual_a consciousness_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o divine_a person_n be_v not_o mind_n second_o that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o mutual_a in-being_a of_o mind_n in_o one_o another_o and_o three_o and_o last_o that_o the_o divine_a person_n be_v not_o proper_o and_o original_o in_o one_o another_o by_o mutual_a consciousness_n but_o by_o a_o identity_n
mind_n and_o there_o be_v three_o infinite_a mind_n it_o must_v follow_v that_o each_o of_o these_o infinite_a mind_n distinct_o and_o by_o himself_o consider_v be_v god_n not_o that_o these_o be_v three_o distinct_a god_n but_o one_o god_n p._n 84._o l._n 7._o but_o i_o affirm_v that_o it_o must_v follow_v not_o only_o that_o each_o of_o they_o distinct_o be_v god_n but_o that_o each_o of_o they_o be_v a_o distinct_a god_n for_o since_o he_o grant_v god_n and_o infinite_a mind_n to_o be_v term_n equipollent_a and_o since_o term_n equipollent_a must_v have_v the_o same_o predicate_v and_o consequent_n if_o the_o term_n distinct_a be_v ascribe_v to_o and_o predicate_v of_o infinite_a mind_n it_o must_v be_v predicate_v of_o and_o ascribe_v to_o the_o term_n god_n as_o to_o the_o other_o equipollent_a and_o so_o one_o must_v be_v as_o distinct_a as_o the_o other_o and_o then_o if_o each_o infinite_a mind_n be_v ●_o distinct_a god_n three_o infinite_a mind_n must_v be_v three_o distinct_a god_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o consequence_n in_o the_o world_n in_o a_o word_n distinction_n and_o multiplication_n be_v according_a to_o this_o author_n predicate_v belong_v to_o infinite_a mind_n and_o therefore_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o equipollency_n of_o the_o term_n they_o must_v equal_o belong_v to_o god_n too_o but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o that_o follow_v from_o this_o man_n assertion_n for_o as_o he_o grant_v here_o that_o the_o term_n infinite_a mind_n and_o god_n be_v equipollent_a so_o he_o affirm_v p._n 82._o l._n 24._o that_o god_n and_o infinite_a intelligent_a person_n be_v term_n equipollent_a also_o whereupon_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o equipollency_n if_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n there_o can_v be_v but_o one_o infinite_a intelligent_a person_n likewise_o for_o as_o much_o as_o both_o equipollent_n must_v have_v the_o same_o predicate_v and_o consequent_n belong_v to_o they_o which_o certain_o represent_v this_o author_n hypothesis_n as_o the_o great_a monster_n that_o ever_o the_o tongue_n or_o pen_n of_o man_n bring_v forth_o for_o first_o by_o own_v the_o equipollency_n of_o god_n and_o infinite_a mind_n and_o withal_o assert_v three_o infinite_a mind_n he_o inevitable_o bring_v in_o tritheism_n and_o next_o by_o assert_v the_o equipollency_n of_o god_n and_o infinite_a intelligent_a person_n and_o thereby_o a_o singularity_n of_o one_o as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o other_o he_o do_v as_o necessary_o run_v into_o the_o contrary_a heresy_n which_o be_v sabellianism_n and_o so_o i_o pass_v from_o the_o equipollency_n of_o term_n to_o the_o second_o part_n of_o my_o answer_n which_o be_v to_o examine_v whether_o the_o term_n three_o distinct_a infinite_a person_n do_v not_o as_o much_o infer_v a_o plurality_n of_o god_n as_o the_o term_n three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n or_o spirit_n do_v which_o the_o defender_n here_o affirm_v and_o the_o animadverter_n as_o positive_o deny_v and_o both_o the_o reason_n of_o his_o denial_n and_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o case_n be_v very_o full_a and_o clear_a and_o 〈◊〉_d in_o this_o that_o three_o distinct_a mind_n be_v three_o distinct_a absolute_a being_n three_o essence_n three_o nature_n each_o exist_v by_o itself_o without_o require_v any_o subject_n to_o inhere_o in_o or_o to_o be_v support_v by_o and_o every_o such_o numerical_a nature_n or_o essence_n must_v have_v its_o numerical_a distinct_a attribute_n or_o predicate_v so_o belong_v to_o it_o that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o numerical_a attribute_n can_v belong_v to_o any_o other_o numerical_a distinct_a nature_n beside_o but_o that_o each_o numerical_a nature_n must_v have_v its_o numerical_o distinct_a attribute_n confine_v whole_o to_o itself_o whereupon_o one_o and_o the_o same_o numerical_a infinity_o which_o be_v a_o natural_a attribute_n can_v belong_v to_o more_o numerical_o distinct_a nature_n than_o to_o one_o alone_a but_o now_o on_o the_o other_o side_n three_o divine_a person_n be_v not_o three_o distinct_a nature_n essence_n or_o absolute_a being_n exist_v by_o themselves_o as_o mind_n or_o spirit_n do_v but_o three_o modification_n or_o relative_n subsistence_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n in_o which_o they_o all_o exist_v together_o as_o in_o their_o subject_n and_o can_v possible_o exist_v by_o themselves_o without_o it_o whereupon_o as_o one_o numerical_a nature_n be_v common_a to_o these_o several_a subsistence_n so_o the_o numerical_a infinity_o of_o the_o say_a nature_n must_v together_o with_o it_o belong_v in_o common_a to_o the_o same_o in_o short_a three_o distinct_a mind_n be_v three_o distinct_a essence_n or_o nature_n exist_v by_o themselves_o can_v never_o be_v infinite_a by_o one_o numerical_a infinity_o any_o more_o than_o one_o numerical_a nature_n belong_v in_o common_a to_o they_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a three_o divine_a person_n be_v proper_o three_o subsistence_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n may_v have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o infinity_o as_o well_o as_o nature_n belong_v to_o they_o all_o but_o you_o will_v say_v when_o there_o be_v mention_n of_o three_o distinct_a infinite_a person_n do_v not_o the_o term_n distinct_a be_v join_v to_o the_o term_n infinite_a import_v a_o distinction_n and_o consequent_o a_o plurality_n of_o infinite_n and_o so_o of_o god_n too_o i_o answer_v no_o because_o the_o term_n distinct_a though_o next_o in_o place_n to_o the_o term_n infinite_a yet_o be_v but_o a_o attribute_n must_v immediate_o in_o construction_n affect_v the_o term_n person_n as_o the_o proper_a subject_n of_o it_o and_o not_o the_o term_n infinite_a which_o be_v but_o another_o attribute_n itself_o and_o immediate_o affect_v the_o same_o subject_n too_o so_o that_o three_o distinct_a infinite_a person_n signify_v but_o as_o much_o as_o three_o distinct_a person_n who_o be_v infinite_a the_o term_n distinct_a be_v here_o exegetical_a of_o the_o numeral_a term_n three_o and_o so_o belong_v direct_o to_o the_o person_n not_o to_o their_o infinity_o just_a as_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v three_o distinct_a omniscient_n or_o omnipotent_a person_n the_o term_n distinct_a belong_v immediate_o and_o direct_o to_o the_o person_n and_o be_v not_o proper_o a_o attribute_n of_o their_o omniscience_n or_o omnipotence_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o divine_a person_n be_v say_v to_o be_v three_o distinct_a infinite_a person_n but_o how_o not_o by_o three_o distinct_a infinity_n of_o which_o each_o person_n have_v one_o of_o itself_o but_o by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o numerical_a infinity_o common_a to_o all_o three_o and_o yet_o i_o own_o that_o even_o this_o one_o common_a infinity_o belong_v distinct_o that_o be_v to_o say_v after_z a_o distinct_a manner_n to_o each_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n even_o as_o the_o divine_a nature_n itself_o do_v and_o this_o be_v what_o i_o insist_v upon_o as_o the_o true_a state_n of_o this_o matter_n and_o shall_v add_v no_o more_o but_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o learned_a and_o impartial_a reader_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o disparity_n of_o the_o case_n for_o nothing_o can_v prove_v a_o parallel_n in_o the_o two_o forecited_a instance_n or_o in_o the_o consequence_n of_o they_o but_o that_o which_o prove_v three_o absolute_a entire_a being_n or_o essence_n and_o three_o relative_n subsistence_n of_o one_o numerical_a be_v or_o essence_n to_o be_v the_o same_o and_o that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o numericall_a attribute_n may_v as_o well_o belong_v to_o three_o such_o absolute_a entire_a being_n or_o essence_n as_o to_o one_o numerical_a absolute_a be_v under_o three_o distinct_a modes_n or_o relation_n and_o by_o this_o we_o may_v judge_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o defender_n follow_v word_n viz._n that_o the_o adimadverter_n be_v aware_a that_o the_o objection_n of_o three_o god_n will_v lie_v against_o three_o person_n as_o well_o as_o against_o three_o mind_n p._n 85._o l._n 13._o to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o animadverter_n never_o judge_v so_o but_o yet_o judge_v it_o the_o part_n of_o a_o disputant_n to_o answer_v any_o seem_a objection_n against_o the_o truth_n defend_v by_o he_o and_o according_o he_o produce_v and_o answer_v this_o as_o such_o a_o one_o and_o no_o better_o but_o how_o do_v he_o answer_v it_o why_o by_o show_v that_o there_o be_v this_o difference_n between_o they_o viz._n that_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n essential_o import_v a_o absolute_a be_v under_o a_o certain_a relation_n afford_v something_o for_o the_o divine_a person_n to_o be_v distinguish_v by_o and_o something_o for_o they_o to_o agree_v in_o but_o that_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o mind_n or_o spirit_n import_v nothing_o but_o a_o bare_a absolute_a simple_a be_v without_o any_o such_o relation_n three_o infinite_a mind_n or_o spirit_n can_v not_o be_v otherwise_o distinguish_v from_o one_o another_o but_o by_o that_o whole_a absolute_a be_v or_o nature_n and_o consequent_o by_o
a_o total_a distinction_n this_o argument_n the_o defender_n repeat_v add_v withal_o that_o the_o sum_n of_o it_o amount_v to_o no_o more_o but_o this_o viz._n that_o three_o distinct_a mind_n be_v three_o distinct_a god_n because_o they_o be_v distinguish_v l._n 20._o but_o will_v this_o shameless_a falsificator_n say_v so_o and_o affirm_v that_o for_o several_a being_n or_o essence_n to_o be_v distinguish_v by_o the_o whole_a of_o what_o they_o be_v be_v no_o more_o than_o bare_o to_o be_v distinguish_v for_o be_v there_o not_o partial_a distinction_n and_o modal_a distinction_n and_o accidental_a distinction_n of_o some_o thing_n and_o will_v this_o ignoramus_n say_v that_o thing_n thus_o distinguish_v be_v distinguish_v by_o the_o whole_a of_o what_o they_o be_v but_o say_v he_o again_o if_o notwithstanding_o this_o distinction_n they_o be_v essential_o and_o inseparable_o one_o they_o be_v not_o three_o distinct_a god_n p._n 85._o l._n 22._o and_o no_o doubt_n they_o be_v not_o so_o if_o they_o be_v essential_o one_o as_o on_o the_o contrary_a they_o must_v be_v so_o if_o they_o be_v not_o essential_o one_o but_o then_o can_v there_o be_v a_o grosser_n absurdity_n in_o nature_n than_o to_o suppose_v it_o possible_a for_o three_o distinct_a essence_n as_o three_o distinct_a mind_n be_v to_o be_v essential_o one_o i_o must_v tell_v this_o author_n that_o it_o be_v a_o contradiction_n in_o the_o term_n all_o distinction_n of_o essence_n by_o themselves_o being_n as_o the_o very_a term_n import_v a_o essential_a distinction_n of_o the_o same_o and_o for_o three_o essential_o distinct_a thing_n to_o be_v essential_o one_o be_v for_o they_o to_o be_v three_o and_o one_o distinct_a and_o not_o distinct_a in_o the_o same_o respect_n which_o be_v absolute_o impossible_a and_o will_v utter_o confound_v the_o distinction_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a peson_n which_o can_v never_o be_v both_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n and_o i_o be_o confident_a that_o there_o be_v hardly_o a_o sophister_n of_o a_o year_n stand_v in_o either_o of_o the_o university_n but_o will_v look_v upon_o this_o proposition_n viz._n that_o three_o distinct_a essence_n or_o essential_o distinct_a mind_n may_v yet_o be_v essential_o one_o as_o much_o fit_a to_o be_v hiss_v at_o than_o dispute_v against_o but_o say_v the_o defender_n be_v not_o three_o infinite_a intelligent_a person_n as_o much_o three_o absolute_a simple_a being_n and_o essence_n as_o three_o mind_n p._n 85._o l._n 27._o no_o he_o have_v be_v tell_v again_o and_o again_o that_o they_o be_v not_o and_o that_o because_o three_o person_n be_v only_o three_o distinct_a relative_n subsistence_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a intelligent_a be_v or_o essence_n include_v in_o all_o and_o each_o of_o they_o whereupon_o he_o repeat_v these_o follow_a word_n out_o of_o the_o animadversion_n viz._n that_o the_o divine_a person_n be_v three_o relative_n or_o one_o simple_a be_v or_o essence_n under_o three_o distinct_a relation_n and_o consequent_o differ_v from_o one_o another_o not_o whole_o and_o by_o all_o that_o be_v in_o they_o but_o only_o by_o some_o mode_n or_o respect_n peculiar_a to_o each_o and_o upon_o that_o account_n cause_v their_o distinction_n thus_o the_o animadverter_n and_o what_o say_v sir_n scorn_n and_o ignorance_n to_o this_o why_o that_o it_o be_v all_o perfect_a gibberish_n that_o be_v in_o other_o word_n that_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o answer_v or_o refute_v one_o tittle_n of_o it_o for_o let_v i_o tell_v his_o emptiness_n that_o such_o gibberish_n as_o it_o be_v it_o be_v the_o language_n use_v by_o all_o the_o divinity-school_n in_o christendom_n in_o the_o explication_n and_o account_n they_o give_v of_o this_o great_a point_n of_o divinity_n and_o according_o i_o have_v transcribe_v the_o whole_a passage_n as_o avow_v every_o syllable_n of_o it_o against_o this_o ignorant_a assumer_n and_o desire_v the_o learned_a reader_n to_o pass_v his_o strict_a examination_n and_o his_o severe_a censure_n upon_o it_o but_o let_v we_o see_v what_o follow_v and_o here_o he_o ask_v the_o question_n what_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n be_v three_o relation_n three_o modes_n three_o respect_n without_o some_o be_v p._n 86._o l._n 17._o i_o answer_v that_o they_o be_v neither_o three_o bare_a modes_n nor_o relation_n or_o respect_n but_o three_o relative_n subsistence_n or_o subsist_v relation_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a divine_a nature_n essence_n or_o mind_n include_v in_o and_o belong_v to_o all_o and_o each_o of_o the_o say_a subsistence_n this_o be_v the_o account_n which_o i_o have_v give_v and_o still_o give_v of_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n and_o which_o as_o i_o tell_v he_o before_o i_o shall_v firm_o abide_v by_o and_o therefore_o without_o ask_v any_o more_o such_o silly_a question_n let_v he_o reckon_v upon_o it_o and_o set_v himself_o to_o confute_v it_o and_o prove_v that_o it_o make_v the_o divine_a person_n three_o mere_a modes_n or_o relation_n if_o he_o can_v and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o three_o relative_n be_v not_o three_o relation_n but_o three_o thing_n relate_v to_o each_o other_o p._n 85._o l._n 15._o i_o answer_v that_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o assertion_n viz._n that_o three_o relative_n be_v not_o three_o relation_n be_v a_o mere_a childish_a cavil_v for_o both_o person_n and_o relation_n be_v sometime_o take_v in_o a_o abstract_n and_o sometime_o in_o a_o concrete_a sense_n and_o no_o body_n say_v that_o person_n be_v proper_o call_v relation_n but_o thus_o concrete_o take_v and_o as_o relation_n imply_v the_o essence_n conjoin_v with_o it_o though_o yet_o to_o help_v we_o to_o a_o better_a and_o more_o distinct_a conception_n of_o these_o thing_n we_o be_v sometime_o force_v to_o conceive_v and_o speak_v of_o one_o as_o abstract_v from_o the_o other_o but_o still_o as_o the_o school_n observe_v relative_n and_o relation_n in_o divinis_fw-la be_v not_o real_o distinct_a thing_n but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n under_o several_a way_n of_o conception_n and_o expression_n but_o it_o be_v the_o latter_a part_n of_o his_o assertion_n in_o which_o we_o be_v most_o concern_v viz._n that_o three_o relative_n be_v three_o thing_n relate_v to_o each_o other_o where_o if_o he_o understand_v the_o word_n thing_n in_o a_o strict_a metaphysical_a sense_n for_o three_o distinct_a entire_a being_n or_o essence_n i_o deny_v that_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v in_o this_o sense_n three_o thing_n relate_v to_o each_o other_o but_o one_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v one_o entire_a be_v or_o essence_n under_o three_o distinct_a relation_n or_o relative_n subsistence_n mutual_o respect_v or_o refer_v to_o one_o another_o and_o this_o indeed_o be_v the_o point_n which_o this_o man_n have_v be_v drive_v at_o all_o along_o viz._n that_o each_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n have_v a_o distinct_a entire_a be_v or_o essence_n of_o its_o own_o belong_v to_o it_o and_o that_o as_o real_o distinct_a from_o the_o being_n or_o essence_n of_o the_o other_o two_o as_o one_o be_v or_o essence_n can_v be_v distinguish_v from_o another_o which_o i_o affirm_v to_o be_v perfect_a rank_a downright_a tritheism_n whereupon_o he_o tell_v we_o again_o with_o his_o usual_a confidence_n and_o no_o proof_n that_o though_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n may_v with_o respect_n to_o their_o three_o real_a subsistence_n be_v call_v three_o infinite_a eternal_a mind_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o three_o absolute_a simple_a being_n or_o essence_n p._n 87._o l._n 19_o to_o which_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o term_n mind_n be_v a_o term_n proper_o import_v nature_n not_o subsistence_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o divine_a person_n can_v never_o be_v call_v three_o distinct_a mind_n bare_o from_o their_o be_v three_o distinct_a subsistence_n since_o all_o these_o subsistence_n may_v be_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a mind_n but_o from_o their_o be_v three_o distinct_a nature_n or_o essence_n which_o because_o they_o can_v never_o be_v neither_o can_v they_o be_v call_v three_o distinct_a mind_n second_o i_o affirm_v that_o the_o term_n mind_n universal_o signify_v a_o absolute_a be_v and_o that_o to_o talk_v of_o a_o mind_n that_o be_v not_o a_o absolute_a be_v be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o talk_v of_o a_o man_n that_o be_v not_o a_o animal_n rationale_n and_o so_o well_o be_o i_o assure_v of_o this_o that_o i_o do_v here_o challenge_v this_o man_n to_o produce_v i_o so_o much_o as_o one_o classic_a one_o scholastic_a or_o theological_a writer_n or_o christian_a council_n that_o ever_o use_v the_o word_n mind_n of_o mind_n in_o any_o other_o signification_n than_o that_o of_o a_o absolute_a be_v or_o essence_n and_o therefore_o when_o he_o shall_v have_v prove_v that_o three_o mind_n be_v not_o
objectivi_fw-la which_o they_o afford_v to_o the_o mind_n and_o of_o which_o one_o conceptus_fw-la objectivus_fw-la can_v never_o be_v the_o other_o nor_o be_v apply_v to_o several_a notion_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n so_o that_o although_o god_n be_v indeed_o one_o pure_a simple_a act_n yet_o if_o we_o do_v not_o conceive_v and_o discourse_v of_o this_o simple_a act_n under_o some_o distinction_n such_o as_o be_v between_o a_o subject_a and_o its_o attribute_n a_o principle_n and_o its_o act_n together_o with_o the_o several_a respect_n it_o bear_v to_o several_a object_n neither_o st._n austin_n nor_o he_o nor_o any_o man_n alive_a can_v discourse_v of_o god_n as_o of_o a_o intelligent_a be_v or_o agent_n at_o all_o and_o therefore_o whereas_o he_o add_v again_o that_o if_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n there_o be_v but_o three_o such_o distinct_a understand_n or_o mind_n or_o intelligent_a person_n who_o be_v not_o each_o other_o nor_o understand_v by_o each_o other_o but_o distinct_o by_o themselves_o he_o be_v not_o concern_v about_o distinct_a substance_n p._n 88_o at_o the_o end_n in_o answer_n to_o that_o i_o tell_v he_o first_o that_o if_o he_o be_v concern_v about_o three_o distinct_a mind_n in_o the_o godhead_n the_o reason_n of_o thing_n shall_v force_v he_o to_o be_v concern_v about_o three_o distinct_a substance_n in_o the_o same_o whether_o he_o will_v or_o no._n second_o that_o though_o i_o grant_v three_o intelligent_a person_n to_o be_v in_o the_o godhead_n yet_o i_o deny_v three_o distinct_a understand_n or_o mind_n to_o be_v in_o it_o but_o that_o these_o three_o intelligent_a person_n be_v such_o by_o one_o numerical_a infinite_a intelligence_n understanding_n or_o mind_n common_a to_o all_o three_o and_o that_o albeit_o one_o of_o the_o person_n neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v the_o other_o nor_o yet_o understand_v by_o the_o other_o but_o each_o of_o they_o distinct_o by_o himself_o yet_o that_o they_o understand_v by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o understanding_n distinct_o belong_v to_o each_o person_n and_o according_o for_o his_o better_a instruction_n i_o must_v tell_v he_o that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n for_o each_o person_n to_o have_v a_o infinite_a understanding_n or_o mind_n distinct_o belong_v to_o he_o and_o quite_o another_o to_o have_v a_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n belong_v to_o each_o of_o they_o which_o distinction_n be_v very_o great_a aught_o always_o careful_o to_o be_v attend_v to_o but_o that_o it_o will_v be_v ever_o able_a to_o make_v its_o way_n into_o this_o man_n understanding_n i_o can_v undertake_v but_o he_o come_v now_o to_o examine_v how_o the_o animadverter_n prove_v that_o three_o distinct_a mind_n be_v three_o distinct_a substance_n and_o because_o he_o draw_v his_o proof_n of_o it_o from_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o mind_n or_o spirit_n viz._n that_o it_o be_v substantia_fw-la incorporea_fw-la intelligens_fw-la this_o man_n reply_v shall_v we_o now_o deny_v his_o definition_n and_o say_v that_o a_o mind_n be_v res_fw-la cogitans_fw-la he_o will_v be_v undo_v for_o want_v of_o his_o substance_n p._n 89._o l._n 7._o no_o sir_n ignorance_n no._n while_o the_o animadverter_n can_v make_v good_a one_o substance_n in_o the_o godhead_n he_o will_v never_o be_v undo_v for_o want_v of_o more_o but_o can_v any_o one_o imagine_v this_o man_n so_o very_o weak_a as_o he_o here_o make_v himself_o by_o think_v that_o a_o res_fw-la cogitans_fw-la can_v be_v any_o thing_n else_o but_o substantia_fw-la cogitans_fw-la for_o can_v a_o accident_n cogitare_fw-la or_o be_v either_o the_o principium_fw-la or_o subjectum_fw-la quod_fw-la of_o any_o thought_n or_o do_v res_n signify_v any_o thing_n proper_o but_o either_o a_o substance_n or_o a_o accident_n or_o can_v substantia_fw-la cogitans_fw-la be_v any_o other_o than_o substantia_fw-la intelligens_fw-la or_o last_o can_v there_o in_o simple_a being_n be_v a_o substantia_fw-la intelligens_fw-la that_o be_v not_o also_o incorporea_fw-la what_o gross_a thick_a abominable_a ignorance_n do_v this_o man_n in_o this_o very_a one_o expression_n betray_v but_o he_o be_v now_o as_o he_o tell_v we_o for_o cap_v definition_n with_o the_o animadverter_n p._n 89._o l._n 10._o and_o to_o that_o purpose_n give_v we_o this_o as_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o person_n viz._n that_o it_o be_v naturae_fw-la rationabilis_fw-la individua_fw-la substantia_fw-la though_o he_o have_v be_v tell_v before_o that_o this_o definition_n with_o all_o due_a respect_n to_o boetius_fw-la be_v it_o speak_v be_v long_o since_o reject_v by_o most_o divine_n schoolman_n and_o other_o as_o defective_a or_o explain_v by_o other_o in_o a_o very_a different_a sense_n from_o what_o the_o term_n individua_fw-la now_o bear_v for_o that_o according_a to_o the_o general_o receive_v sense_n of_o it_o it_o will_v certain_o infer_v two_o distinct_a person_n in_o our_o saviour_n upon_o his_o incarnation_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o every_o person_n be_v naturae_fw-la rationalis_fw-la indidua_fw-la substantia_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v true_a in_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o essential_a predicate_v as_o affirm_v nothing_o of_o a_o person_n but_o what_o necessary_o belong_v to_o it_o but_o for_o all_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o true_a definition_n as_o not_o be_v adequate_a to_o the_o thing_n define_v nor_o contain_v all_o that_o be_v in_o it_o and_o consequent_o not_o convertible_a with_o it_o as_o a_o definition_n ought_v to_o be_v so_o that_o if_o this_o be_v his_o cap_v definition_n as_o he_o call_v it_o he_o will_v be_v much_o better_o employ_v in_o cap_v verse_n among_o the_o boy_n if_o he_o be_v able_a well_o but_o though_o according_a to_o the_o receive_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n this_o be_v not_o a_o true_a that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o perfect_a definition_n of_o a_o person_n yet_o if_o it_o be_v a_o essential_a predicate_v of_o one_o as_o we_o have_v grant_v so_o that_o every_o person_n be_v true_o say_v to_o be_v rationalis_fw-la naturae_fw-la individua_fw-la substantia_fw-la must_v not_o then_o three_o person_n be_v three_o individual_a substance_n i_o answer_v no_o because_o though_o each_o person_n be_v such_o a_o individual_a substance_n and_o distinct_o too_o yet_o each_o person_n be_v not_o a_o distinct_a individual_a substance_n for_o as_o much_o as_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a individual_a substance_n may_v sustain_v three_o distinct_a personality_n by_o reason_n of_o three_o distinct_a subsistence_n or_o distinct_a way_n of_o subsist_v belong_v to_o it_o from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o in_o the_o divine_a oeconomy_n the_o multiplication_n of_o person_n or_o personal_a subsistence_n do_v not_o multiply_v the_o divine_a substance_n but_o say_v he_o let_v we_o see_v how_o the_o animadverter_n will_v bring_v off_o three_o person_n from_o be_v three_o distinct_a substance_n and_o i_o will_v undertake_v the_o dean_n shall_v do_v as_o much_o and_o do_v it_o as_o well_o for_o three_o mind_n p._n 89._o l._n 15._o that_o by_o his_o favour_n shall_v be_v try_v and_o first_o the_o animadverter_n bring_v off_o the_o three_o person_n from_o be_v three_o substance_n by_o this_o one_o argument_n that_o they_o be_v but_o three_o subsistence_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a substance_n include_v in_o all_o and_o each_o of_o they_o and_o to_o make_v this_o out_o further_o i_o shall_v premise_v this_o assertion_n viz._n that_o no_o substance_n be_v proper_o a_o subsistence_n nor_o any_o subsistence_n proper_o a_o substance_n but_o differ_v from_o one_o another_o as_o much_o as_o a_o entire_a be_v and_o the_o mode_n of_o that_o be_v as_o a_o subject_a and_o as_o a_o affection_n qualify_a or_o determine_v the_o say_a subject_n and_o let_v this_o author_n with_o his_o new_a logic_n and_o his_o no_o metaphysic_n prove_v the_o contrary_a if_o he_o be_v able_a for_o i_o here_o challenge_v he_o to_o do_v it_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o thus_o argue_v three_o distinct_a subsistence_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a substance_n include_v in_o all_o and_o each_o of_o they_o be_v not_o three_o distinct_a substance_n but_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v three_o distinct_a subsistence_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a substance_n include_v in_o all_o and_o each_o of_o they_o and_o therefore_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v not_o three_o distinct_a substance_n and_o this_o one_o argument_n i_o rely_v upon_o as_o so_o full_o conclusive_a of_o the_o point_n to_o be_v prove_v that_o i_o judge_v it_o perfect_o needless_a to_o add_v any_o more_o only_o as_o i_o have_v here_o prove_v the_o three_o divine_a person_n not_o to_o be_v three_o substance_n so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n i_o prove_v this_o author_n three_o distinct_a mind_n to_o be_v three_o substance_n thus_o three_o distinct_a absolute_a being_n exist_v by_o themselves_o so_o as_o not_o to_o exist_v in_o or_o depend_v upon_o any_o other_o be_v as_o
a_o subject_a be_v three_o distinct_a substance_n but_o three_o distinct_a mind_n be_v three_o such_o absolute_a being_n and_o therefore_o three_o distinct_a mind_n be_v three_o distinct_a substance_n in_o which_o syllogism_n to_o show_v the_o disparity_n between_o mind_n and_o person_n let_v the_o term_n three_o person_n be_v put_v into_o the_o room_n of_o three_o mind_n and_o then_o the_o minor_a which_o be_v true_a and_o must_v be_v grant_v of_o mind_n must_v be_v deny_v of_o person_n for_o they_o be_v not_o three_o distinct_a absolute_a being_n so_o exist_v as_o be_v express_v in_o the_o major_a proposition_n and_o therefore_o that_o argument_n which_o conclude_v three_o mind_n to_o be_v three_o substance_n can_v never_o conclude_v three_o person_n to_o be_v so_o too_o and_o whereas_o the_o defender_n affirm_v p._n 89._o l._n 27._o that_o three_o eternal_a mind_n be_v but_o three_o eternal_a subsistence_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o individual_a eternal_a mind_n i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v the_o height_n of_o absurdity_n and_o utter_o impossible_a in_o reason_n and_o philosophy_n for_o a_o mind_n which_o be_v a_o absolute_a entire_a be_v exist_v by_o itself_o to_o be_v the_o subsistence_n of_o another_o absolute_a be_v for_o as_o much_o as_o subsistence_n be_v proper_o and_o formal_o a_o mode_n of_o substance_n and_o in_o the_o divine_a substance_n or_o nature_n a_o relative_n mode_n too_o though_o still_o imply_v in_o it_o the_o say_a nature_n as_o modify_v or_o determine_v by_o it_o so_o that_o we_o see_v here_o this_o man_n philosophy_n in_o make_v one_o mind_n the_o subsistence_n or_o modification_n of_o another_o mind_n and_o three_o distinct_a mind_n so_o many_o distinct_a subsistence_n or_o modification_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o mind_n which_o i_o be_o sure_a all_o the_o school_n in_o christendom_n will_v with_o one_o voice_n explode_v and_o so_o i_o leave_v this_o defender_n or_o rather_o this_o dean_n in_o masquerade_n to_o bring_v off_o his_o three_o distinct_a mind_n from_o be_v three_o distinct_a substance_n at_o his_o leisure_n but_o i_o fear_v it_o will_v cost_v he_o a_o new_a cast_n of_o his_o meaning_n to_o do_v it_o though_o let_v that_o be_v what_o it_o will_v it_o be_v not_o any_o one_o man_n meaning_n especial_o found_v upon_o his_o ignorance_n but_o the_o universal_a judgement_n and_o consent_n of_o all_o learned_a man_n that_o must_v determine_v the_o proper_a and_o distinct_a sense_n both_o of_o substance_n and_o subsistence_n in_o this_o dispute_n but_o the_o animadverter_n in_o prove_v a_o absolute_a unity_n and_o disprove_v all_o plurality_n of_o substance_n in_o the_o godhead_n have_v first_o strengthen_v his_o assertion_n with_o the_o authority_n of_o some_o of_o the_o most_o eminent_a father_n positive_o assert_v the_o former_a and_o not_o without_o indignation_n reject_v the_o other_o and_o what_o do_v this_o defender_n answer_v to_o these_o why_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o father_n by_o deny_v three_o substance_n principal_o reject_v three_o divers_a nature_n of_o different_a kind_n or_o species_n in_o opposition_n to_o arianism_n p._n 90._o l._n 5._o very_o good_a they_o principal_o reject_v a_o plurality_n of_o specifical_o distinct_a substance_n and_o will_v this_o man_n infer_v from_o hence_o that_o they_o do_v not_o reject_v also_o a_o plurality_n of_o individual_a substance_n in_o the_o godhead_n why_o yes_o if_o he_o will_v invalidate_v the_o authority_n allege_v by_o the_o animadverter_n he_o do_v and_o must_v do_v so_o and_o according_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o father_n by_o unity_n of_o substance_n here_o understand_v only_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v only_o a_o specific_a unity_n of_o substance_n the_o father_n in_o opposition_n to_o arianism_n design_v only_o to_o disprove_v a_o specific_a plurality_n of_o substance_n in_o the_o godhead_n not_o a_o plurality_n of_o numerical_a distinct_a individual_n so_o that_o it_o seem_v they_o resolve_v though_o they_o fall_v foul_a upon_o the_o arian_n yet_o to_o do_v it_o so_o as_o to_o keep_v fair_a quarter_n with_o the_o heathen_n in_o answer_n to_o which_o since_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d import_v a_o union_n of_o person_n in_o such_o a_o nature_n essence_n or_o substance_n as_o be_v uncapable_a of_o be_v numerical_o multiply_v as_o the_o divine_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d essential_o be_v and_o can_v but_o be_v i_o affirm_v that_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d irrefragable_o prove_v a_o numerical_a unity_n or_o identity_n of_o substance_n in_o the_o divine_a person_n and_o withal_o that_o all_o specific_a unity_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n or_o person_n be_v absurd_a and_o impossible_a for_o i_o must_v tell_v this_o puny_a logician_n that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o disprove_v a_o specific_a diversity_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o three_o person_n and_o quite_o another_o to_o prove_v a_o positive_a specific_a unity_n of_o the_o same_o which_o can_v never_o be_v do_v where_o there_o be_v not_o several_a individual_a nature_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n to_o collect_v it_o from_o second_o i_o answer_v that_o though_o the_o father_n in_o their_o dispute_n with_o the_o arian_n allege_v several_a thing_n for_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o three_o person_n which_o strict_o reach_v no_o further_o than_o to_o specific_a unity_n yet_o when_o they_o dispute_v this_o matter_n more_o exact_o with_o the_o heathen_a polytheist_n they_o rest_v not_o in_o this_o but_o still_o insist_v upon_o and_o contend_v for_o a_o numerical_a unity_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n essence_n or_o substance_n as_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v do_v ever_o since_o and_o beside_o the_o truth_n be_v those_o very_a argument_n or_o rather_o instance_n of_o resemblance_n bring_v by_o the_o father_n against_o the_o arian_n though_o take_v from_o thing_n have_v no_o more_o than_o a_o specific_a unity_n of_o nature_n yet_o do_v not_o determinate_o prove_v either_o a_o specific_a or_o a_o numerical_a unity_n of_o nature_n in_o the_o divine_a person_n but_o only_o a_o unity_n or_o sameness_n of_o nature_n indefinite_o which_o be_v lay_v as_o a_o foundation_n the_o peculiar_a condition_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n quick_o determine_v the_o kind_n of_o its_o unity_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o its_o infinity_o prove_v that_o that_o unity_n or_o sameness_n can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o numerical_a and_o thus_o have_v answer_v what_o he_o have_v say_v about_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n if_o he_o still_o persist_v in_o this_o scandalous_a assertion_n that_o the_o father_n be_v only_o against_o several_a kind_n and_o species_n of_o substance_n in_o the_o godhead_n and_o divine_a person_n but_o not_o against_o several_a individual_a and_o numerical_o distinct_a substance_n in_o the_o same_o i_o desire_v he_o to_o satisfy_v the_o world_n in_o these_o two_o thing_n first_o how_o the_o father_n come_v to_o look_v upon_o the_o divine_a nature_n or_o essence_n in_o three_o distinct_a person_n as_o such_o a_o amaze_a incomprehensible_a mystery_n as_o they_o still_o avow_v it_o to_o be_v if_o the_o say_a nature_n be_v not_o more_o than_o specifical_o one_o for_o that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o specifical_a nature_n shall_v be_v in_o a_o plurality_n of_o individual_a person_n be_v no_o wonder_n at_o all_o second_o i_o desire_v he_o to_o satisfy_v the_o world_n also_o why_o the_o primitive_a latin_a church_n with_o so_o much_o zeal_n and_o for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n refuse_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d declare_v this_o for_o the_o only_a reason_n of_o their_o refusal_n thereof_o that_o they_o reckon_v it_o to_o signify_v three_o substance_n for_o they_o can_v not_o reckon_v it_o to_o signify_v three_o specifical_o distinct_a substance_n for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o know_v that_o the_o greek_a church_n which_o use_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o contend_v for_o it_o have_v constant_o zealous_o and_o most_o express_o oppose_v the_o arian_n in_o their_o assert_v three_o species_n of_o substance_n in_o the_o trinity_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v evident_a even_o to_o a_o demonstration_n that_o they_o be_v only_o jealous_a of_o three_o individual_a substance_n which_o they_o fear_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v introduce_v and_o so_o betray_v they_o into_o another_o sort_n of_o arianism_n or_o rather_o gentilism_n as_o bad_a as_o the_o first_o these_o two_o query_n i_o say_v i_o challenge_v this_o author_n to_o answer_v i_o in_o by_o make_v it_o appear_v notwithstanding_o the_o forego_n particular_n that_o while_o the_o father_n assert_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o divine_a essence_n or_o substance_n it_o be_v only_o a_o specific_a not_o a_o individual_a unity_n of_o the_o same_o which_o they_o
power_n itself_o inseparable_a both_o from_o the_o essence_n which_o they_o belong_v to_o as_o also_o from_o one_o another_o which_o distinct_a mind_n can_v never_o be_v but_o the_o defender_n add_v that_o the_o true_a and_o short_a answer_n to_o the_o animadverter_n argument_n be_v that_o the_o same_o substance_n repeat_v in_o three_o distinct_a subsistence_n be_v not_o three_o substance_n but_o one_o p._n 90._o ibid._n in_o answer_n to_o which_o he_o have_v be_v sufficient_o tell_v already_o that_o the_o term_n repeat_v the_o divine_a substance_n or_o nature_n be_v new_a odd_a and_o unjustifiable_a and_o such_o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n never_o make_v use_n of_o and_o for_o that_o cause_n ought_v utter_o to_o be_v condemn_v and_o throw_v aside_o but_o for_o a_o further_a answer_n to_o it_o i_o do_v first_o affirm_v in_o general_a that_o for_o the_o same_o numerical_a nature_n or_o substance_n to_o be_v repeat_v be_v impossible_a and_o a_o contradiction_n repetition_n as_o we_o have_v show_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o another_o production_n in_o the_o second_o place_n i_o deny_v in_o particular_a that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o repetition_n of_o the_o divine_a substance_n or_o nature_n in_o three_o subsistence_n the_o say_a nature_n indeed_o be_v and_o exist_v in_o three_o subsistence_n but_o i_o absolute_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v repeat_v in_o they_o and_o it_o will_v concern_v this_o bold_a novellist_n to_o prove_v as_o well_o as_o assert_v that_o it_o be_v so_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n it_o be_v no_o small_a shame_n and_o calamity_n to_o the_o church_n that_o he_o be_v not_o call_v to_o account_v for_o such_o horrible_a innovation_n but_o the_o animadverter_n have_v argue_v further_o against_o three_o distinct_a substance_n in_o the_o godhead_n thus_o that_o if_o the_o three_o person_n be_v three_o distinct_a substance_n than_o two_o distinct_a substance_n will_v concur_v in_o and_o belong_v to_o each_o person_n to_o wit_n that_o substance_n which_o be_v the_o divine_a essence_n and_o so_o be_v communicable_a or_o common_a to_o all_o the_o person_n and_o that_o substance_n which_o constitute_v each_o person_n and_o thereby_o be_v so_o peculiar_a to_o he_o as_o to_o distinguish_v he_o from_o the_o other_o and_o consequent_o to_o be_v incommunicable_a to_o any_o beside_o he_o to_o who_o it_o belong_v since_o for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substance_n to_o be_v common_a to_o all_o three_o person_n and_o withal_o to_o belong_v incommunicable_o to_o each_o of_o the_o three_o and_o thereby_o to_o distinguish_v they_o from_o one_o another_o be_v contradictious_a and_o impossible_a and_o what_o can_v this_o man_n oppose_v to_o this_o argument_n with_o the_o least_o show_n or_o shadow_n of_o reason_n what_o part_n of_o it_o do_v he_o deny_v or_o what_o term_n of_o it_o do_v he_o distinguish_v for_o the_o argument_n proceed_v upon_o his_o own_o supposal_n at_o present_a that_o the_o three_o person_n be_v three_o distinct_a substance_n as_o the_o animadverter_n have_v full_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v before_o why_o all_o that_o he_o say_v be_v that_o he_o be_v hearty_o ashamed_a and_o sorry_a good_a man_n to_o see_v such_o stuff_n as_o must_v necessary_o expose_v our_o faith_n to_o the_o scorn_n of_o atheist_n and_o infidel_n and_o therefore_o that_o he_o may_v not_o contribute_v to_o it_o he_o gracious_o declare_v that_o all_o this_o nonsense_n shall_v escape_v the_o lash_n of_o his_o pen_n p._n 91._o l._n 22._o that_o be_v according_a to_o his_o constant_a never_a fail_a way_n he_o be_v then_o high_a in_o noise_n and_o vapour_n when_o he_o be_v bring_v most_o to_o a_o nonplus_n but_o i_o have_v some_o answer_n of_o another_o sort_n to_o make_v to_o this_o passage_n allege_v out_o of_o he_o as_o first_o that_o whatsoever_o his_o sorrow_n in_o this_o case_n may_v be_v he_o will_v hardly_o convince_v the_o world_n that_o he_o have_v any_o shame_n second_o that_o to_o expose_v our_o holy_a faith_n to_o the_o scorn_n of_o atheist_n and_o infidel_n by_o one_o folly_n and_o nonsense_n be_v very_o bad_a but_o that_o to_o make_v atheist_n and_o infidel_n by_o one_o scandalous_a write_n and_o more_o scandalous_a practice_n be_v much_o worse_o three_o that_o nothing_o do_v or_o can_v more_o expose_v our_o holy_a faith_n to_o the_o scorn_n of_o atheist_n and_o infidel_n than_o for_o any_o one_o who_o wear_v but_o the_o name_n of_o a_o christian_a to_o assert_v three_o god_n which_o three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n spirit_n or_o substance_n upon_o all_o the_o principle_n of_o common_a reason_n and_o philosophy_n certain_o and_o undeniable_o be_v and_o withal_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o nonsense_n comparable_a to_o the_o assert_v three_o distinct_a absolute_a infinite_n and_o four_a and_o last_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o all_o the_o nonsense_n of_o the_o forego_n argument_n as_o he_o call_v every_o thing_n which_o he_o can_v answer_v shall_v escape_v the_o lash_n of_o his_o pen_n i_o will_v have_v this_o poor_a whipster_n know_v that_o the_o animadverter_n be_v far_o from_o dread_v the_o lash_n of_o that_o pen_n which_o never_o yet_o draw_v blood_n of_o any_o one_o but_o of_o priscian_n and_o so_o have_v answer_v his_o compassionate_a preamble_n in_o behalf_n of_o our_o suffer_a faith_n forsooth_o we_o will_v now_o see_v what_o he_o have_v to_o say_v upon_o occasion_n of_o the_o animadverter_n argument_n for_o it_o can_v be_v no_o more_o call_v a_o answer_n to_o it_o than_o to_o that_o learned_a reply_n make_v to_o his_o hobbian_a vindication_n of_o his_o case_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o order_n to_o this_o i_o demand_v of_o he_o first_o whether_o that_o one_o infinite_a common_a essence_n or_o substance_n which_o formal_o unite_v the_o divine_a person_n together_o do_v or_o can_v formal_o distinguish_v they_o also_o from_o one_o another_o second_o whether_o since_o he_o utter_o deny_v all_o mode_n as_o well_o as_o accident_n in_o god_n that_o which_o distinguish_v each_o person_n from_o the_o other_o can_v be_v any_o thing_n else_o but_o a_o substance_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o nature_n conceievable_a by_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n but_o what_o be_v either_o a_o substance_n a_o accident_n or_o a_o mode_n of_o be_v and_o i_o defy_v this_o man_n or_o any_o one_o beside_o to_o give_v instance_n of_o a_o four_o which_o be_v none_o of_o these_o and_o three_o and_o last_o whether_o each_o person_n hereupon_o must_v not_o either_o have_v two_o substance_n belong_v to_o he_o viz._n one_o unite_n he_o to_o and_o the_o other_o distinguish_v he_o from_o the_o rest_n or_o be_v both_o unite_a and_o distinguish_v by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substance_n common_a to_o they_o all_o both_o of_o which_o be_v impossible_a this_o be_v the_o argument_n though_o after_o another_o and_o more_o particular_a manner_n propose_v and_o i_o challenge_v this_o piece_n of_o a_o disputant_n to_o overthrow_v any_o one_o part_n or_o proposition_n of_o it_o by_o solid_a and_o clear_a reason_n for_o fool_v and_o flounce_v and_o throw_v out_o the_o word_n nonsense_n from_o a_o plentiful_a stock_n within_o will_v not_o do_v it_o but_o to_o show_v how_o woeful_o he_o be_v hamper_v see_v what_o desperate_a assertion_n he_o advance_v p._n 91_o 92._o for_o the_o disentangle_a himself_o and_o first_o in_o p._n 91._o l._n 28._o he_o roundly_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o dean_n know_v not_o any_o distinction_n between_o the_o divine_a essence_n and_o a_o divine_a person_n but_o that_o the_o essence_n make_v the_o person_n in_o which_o word_n there_o be_v two_o as_o false_a and_o heterodox_n proposition_n as_o can_v well_o be_v deliver_v by_o any_o one_o profess_v divinity_n viz._n first_o that_o there_o be_v no_o distinction_n between_o the_o divine_a essence_n or_o substance_n and_o the_o divine_a person_n and_o second_o that_o the_o divine_a essence_n make_v the_o person_n both_o of_o which_o i_o will_v distinct_o examine_v and_o first_o as_o to_o the_o first_o of_o they_o i_o affirm_v that_o the_o divine_a essence_n be_v and_o can_v but_o be_v virtual_o and_o fundamental_o distinguish_v from_o the_o person_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o afford_v a_o reason_n and_o foundation_n in_o the_o thing_n itself_o sufficient_a for_o the_o mind_n to_o form_v thereupon_o a_o different_a conception_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n from_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n by_o proper_a and_o metaphysical_a abstraction_n and_o that_o so_o distinct_a that_o the_o conceptus_fw-la objectivus_fw-la of_o one_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v the_o conceptus_fw-la objectivus_fw-la of_o the_o other_o and_o if_o this_o distinction_n or_o rather_o distinguishableness_n shall_v not_o be_v admit_v in_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o person_n as_o found_v upon_o some_o reason_n in_o the_o thing_n so_o distinguish_v i_o desire_v this_o man_n to_o tell_v i_o upon_o what_o account_v it_o be_v
that_o all_o divine_n not_o except_v himself_o discourse_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n as_o determinable_a and_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n as_o of_o those_o by_o who_o it_o be_v determine_v and_o again_o of_o the_o divine_a essence_n as_o communicable_a and_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n two_o of_o they_o at_o least_o as_o those_o to_o who_o it_o be_v communicate_v for_o can_v this_o be_v do_v without_o a_o distinct_a conception_n of_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v communicate_v and_o of_o those_o to_o who_o the_o communication_n be_v to_o be_v make_v or_o can_v there_o be_v any_o distinction_n in_o the_o conception_n where_o there_o be_v not_o a_o proportionable_a distinguishableness_n in_o the_o object_n so_o that_o upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n it_o appear_v that_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o contrary_a to_o all_o the_o principle_n of_o christian_a philosophy_n and_o theology_n than_o this_o author_n denial_n of_o all_o distinction_n in_o the_o sense_n we_o have_v give_v of_o it_o between_o the_o divine_a essence_n and_o person_n for_o without_o such_o distinction_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o conceive_v or_o discourse_v of_o the_o say_a person_n as_o one_o in_o essence_n and_o three_o in_o subsistence_n and_o so_o i_o pass_v to_o the_o examination_n of_o his_o other_o proposition_n viz._n that_o the_o essence_n make_v the_o person_n concern_v which_o i_o do_v with_o the_o great_a assurance_n appeal_v to_o all_o the_o world_n whether_o any_o thing_n more_o absurd_a strange_a and_o paradoxical_a be_v ever_o assert_v in_o divinity_n for_o how_o can_v the_o divine_a essence_n be_v conceive_v to_o make_v the_o person_n since_o all_o make_v must_v of_o necessity_n be_v one_o of_o these_o two_o way_n first_o either_o by_o a_o efficient_a production_n or_o second_o by_o a_o formal_a constitution_n of_o a_o thing_n for_o no_o three_o way_n beside_o these_o be_v assigneable_a but_o it_o can_v be_v by_o the_o first_o because_o it_o be_v and_o ever_o be_v a_o receive_a maxim_n in_o theology_n that_o the_o divine_a essence_n consider_v absolute_o in_o itself_o neither_o produce_v nor_o be_v produce_v so_o that_o if_o any_o production_n or_o operation_n be_v ascribe_v to_o it_o it_o must_v be_v only_o as_o it_o subsist_v in_o a_o person_n one_o or_o more_o who_o be_v the_o sole_a proper_a agent_n or_o producer_n in_o every_o divine_a act_n or_o effect_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o that_o which_o can_v produce_v nothing_o but_o as_o it_o be_v and_o operate_v in_o the_o person_n can_v produce_v the_o person_n itself_o which_o it_o must_v presuppose_v before_o it_o can_v operate_v beside_o that_o if_o the_o essence_n shall_v produce_v the_o person_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o it_o must_v produce_v one_o person_n as_o well_o as_o another_o and_o consequent_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n as_o well_o as_o that_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o if_o the_o essence_n shall_v produce_v the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n how_o can_v the_o father_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o the_o deity_n as_o the_o ancient_a writer_n term_v he_o very_o often_o and_o to_o be_v without_o all_o original_a which_o be_v the_o peculiar_a character_n of_o his_o person_n for_o that_o the_o deity_n or_o divine_a essence_n which_o be_v but_o two_o word_n for_o the_o same_o thing_n shall_v produce_v the_o fountain_n of_o the_o deity_n or_o a_o self-originated_n person_n no_o mortal_a man_n i_o believe_v this_o author_n still_o except_v can_v imagine_v since_o therefore_o it_o be_v so_o insufferable_o absurd_a to_o affirm_v that_o the_o essence_n make_v the_o person_n by_o way_n of_o production_n let_v we_o see_v whether_o it_o can_v be_v say_v to_o make_v it_o the_o other_o way_n viz._n by_o a_o formal_a constitution_n of_o it_o but_o if_o this_o be_v admit_v than_o the_o essence_n must_v be_v that_o by_o which_o a_o person_n be_v formal_o a_o person_n whereupon_o the_o essence_n and_o the_o person_n be_v commensurate_a and_o convertible_a it_o will_v follow_v that_o if_o there_o be_v but_o one_o essence_n there_o can_v be_v but_o one_o person_n and_o that_o if_o there_o be_v a_o plurality_n of_o person_n there_o must_v be_v a_o plurality_n of_o essence_n too_o for_o the_o multiplication_n of_o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o any_o thing_n must_v of_o necessity_n multiply_v the_o thing_n itself_o of_o which_o it_o be_v so_o and_o here_o i_o must_v tell_v this_o author_n that_o as_o much_o as_o he_o disclaim_v the_o use_n of_o the_o term_n formal_a reason_n yet_o this_o very_a expression_n of_o he_o that_o the_o essence_n make_v the_o person_n true_o and_o proper_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v import_v any_o thing_n else_o than_o that_o the_o essence_n be_v the_o formal_a reason_n thereof_o and_o if_o so_o let_v he_o upon_o this_o assertion_n keep_v off_o the_o forementioned_a consequence_n viz._n that_o either_o there_o be_v three_o essence_n or_o but_o one_o person_n if_o he_o can_v but_o after_o all_o find_v himself_o pinch_v still_o hard_o and_o hard_o and_o not_o well_o know_v which_o way_n to_o turn_v himself_o at_o length_n he_o cry_v out_o it_o be_v a_o amaze_a thing_n to_o think_v what_o strange_a conceit_n this_o man_n viz._n the_o animadverter_n must_v have_v of_o a_o trinity_n of_o person_n and_o unity_n of_o essence_n or_o substance_n p._n 92._o l._n 7._o to_o relieve_v he_o from_o which_o transport_n if_o this_o defender_n instead_o of_o look_v into_o the_o father_n which_o he_o so_o often_o mention_n will_v be_v please_v to_o read_v they_o he_o shall_v find_v this_o amaze_a conceit_n or_o notion_n of_o the_o trinity_n as_o he_o call_v it_o full_o and_o frequent_o express_v by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o greek_a father_n and_o in_o the_o latin_a father_n council_n schoolman_n and_o other_o divine_n popish_a and_o protestant_n by_o the_o una_fw-la essentia_fw-la and_o the_o tres_fw-la subsistentiae_fw-la or_o modi_n subsistendi_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o three_o distinct_a modes_n of_o subsist_v or_o three_o subsistence_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a essence_n or_o substance_n include_v in_o all_o and_o each_o of_o they_o this_o be_v the_o animadverter_n notion_n of_o one_o divine_a essence_n and_o three_o divine_a person_n as_o this_o man_n have_v be_v more_o than_o once_o tell_v and_o the_o authority_n producible_a for_o it_o and_o in_o a_o great_a measure_n produce_v already_o in_o the_o animadversion_n may_v one_o will_v think_v have_v serve_v to_o cure_v that_o amazement_n or_o rather_o st●por_n which_o this_o author_n upon_o this_o account_n have_v be_v so_o deep_o seize_v with_o on_o the_o contrary_a such_o a_o notion_n of_o the_o trinity_n as_o make_v the_o divine_a nature_n or_o essence_n a_o person_n and_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n to_o be_v three_o distinct_a mind_n or_o spirit_n and_o consequent_o three_o distinct_a essence_n nature_n or_o substance_n be_v matter_n of_o much_o great_a amazement_n and_o abhorrence_n too_o to_o all_o that_o be_v concern_v for_o the_o faith_n which_o they_o be_v baptize_v into_o and_o moreover_o for_o any_o one_o to_o assert_v three_o infinit●_n mind_n and_o yet_o to_o pretend_v not_o to_o assert_v three_o god_n be_v yet_o more_o amaze_a than_o the_o former_a and_o last_o for_o such_o scandalous_a assertion_n to_o wear_v the_o stamp_n of_o public_a licence_n and_o authority_n and_o the_o shameless_a author_n of_o they_o to_o be_v endure_v and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o to_o be_v also_o under_o such_o circumstance_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v to_o all_o sober_a and_o pious_a mind_n more_o amaze_a monstrous_a and_o astonish_v than_o all_o his_o detestable_a heresy_n put_v together_o but_o to_o draw_v to_o a_o close_a of_o this_o argument_n against_o his_o three_o infinite_a mind_n from_o a_o necessity_n of_o assert_v three_o substance_n in_o the_o godhead_n as_o unavoidable_o consequent_a thereupon_o i_o find_v this_o author_n utter_o at_o a_o loss_n where_o to_o fix_v and_o by_o no_o mean_n consistent_a with_o himself_o as_o sometime_o deny_v and_o sometime_o allow_v his_o three_o mind_n to_o be_v three_o substance_n his_o denial_n of_o it_o appear_v in_o these_o word_n let_v the_o animadverter_n say_v he_o bring_v off_o three_o person_n from_o be_v three_o substance_n and_o the_o d●●●_n will_v undertake_v to_o bring_v off_o his_o three_o mind_n from_o be_v so_o as_o well_o p._n 89._o l._n 15._o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o this_o author_n do_v not_o allow_v of_o three_o substance_n in_o the_o trinity_n why_o do_v he_o interpret_v the_o place_n allege_v by_o the_o animadverte●_n out_o of_o the_o father_n for_o a_o unity_n of_o substance_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o person_n only_o of_o a_o specific_a unity_n of_o substance_n for_o that_o all_o know_v
have_v show_v be_v not_o a_o attribute_n which_o import_v only_o some_o particular_a perfection_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n but_o the_o subject_a of_o all_o such_o attribute_n yet_o in_o these_o proposition_n the_o father_n be_v god_n the_o son_n be_v god_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n it_o be_v a_o logical_a attritube_v in_o every_o one_o of_o they_o and_o let_v he_o champ_v upon_o this_o till_o he_o break_v his_o tooth_n upon_o it_o if_o he_o please_v but_o as_o man_n sometime_o in_o a_o drunken_a fit_a cry_n out_o fire_n fire_n not_o from_o what_o they_o see_v without_o they_o but_o from_o what_o they_o feel_v within_o so_o this_o man_n out_o of_o a_o internal_a plenitude_n of_o ignorance_n cry_v out_o here_o in_o most_o tragical_a manner_n what_o will_v this_o animadverter_n make_v of_o god_n at_o last_o when_o the_o divine_a essence_n be_v a_o attribute_n and_o a_o divine_a person_n a_o mere_a mode_n p._n 94._o l._n 30._o in_o answer_n to_o which_o as_o it_o have_v be_v sufficient_o explaiend_n how_o the_o animadverter_n make_v the_o divine_a essence_n concrete_o express_v by_o the_o term_n god_n a_o attribute_n so_o if_o this_o defender_n will_v say_v further_o that_o he_o make_v a_o divine_a person_n a_o mere_a mode_n i_o do_v here_o challenge_v he_o to_o point_n out_o that_o place_n in_o the_o animadversion_n where_o the_o animadverter_n say_v so_o he_o have_v indeed_o over_o and_o over_o declare_v and_o that_o without_o shuffle_n from_o his_o word_n to_o his_o meaning_n that_o he_o hold_v a_o divine_a person_n to_o be_v proper_o the_o divine_a nature_n under_o such_o a_o certain_a mode_n of_o subsistence_n or_o in_o other_o term_n such_o a_o certain_a mode_n of_o subsistence_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n still_o include_v the_o say_a nature_n in_o it_o this_o i_o say_v the_o animadverter_n all_o along_o hold_v and_o assert_n and_o if_o this_o man_n call_v this_o the_o make_v a_o divine_a person_n a_o mere_a mode_n as_o it_o be_v a_o gross_a and_o direct_a falsehood_n and_o utter_o disow_v by_o his_o adversary_n so_o shall_v i_o take_v the_o liberty_n of_o call_v thing_n by_o their_o own_o proper_a name_n it_o may_v just_o entitle_v he_o to_o a_o very_a coarse_a one_o now_o the_o proposition_n from_o first_o to_o last_o assert_v by_o this_o author_n be_v this_o that_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n or_o spirit_n which_o the_o animadverter_n affirm_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n as_o he_o show_v by_o cast_v it_o into_o the_o same_o form_n and_o consequent_o that_o if_o the_o say_a form_n be_v a_o true_a way_n of_o reason_v concern_v the_o divine_a nature_n and_o person_n this_o proposition_n ought_v to_o be_v reject_v as_o utter_o inconsistent_a with_o it_o and_o how_o do_v our_o author_n counter-argue_a this_o why_o why_o by_o run_v out_o into_o a_o impertinent_a proof_n that_o infinite_a mind_n belong_v distinct_o to_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n and_o consequent_o may_v be_v distinct_o predicate_v of_o each_o of_o they_o both_o which_o be_v as_o easy_o grant_v he_o as_o they_o can_v be_v allege_v by_o he_o but_o by_o his_o favour_n the_o question_n here_o be_v not_o whether_o each_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n be_v distinct_o a_o infinite_a mind_n but_o whether_o each_o of_o they_o be_v a_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n which_o this_o defender_n affirm_v and_o that_o so_o positive_o that_o he_o lay_v the_o whole_a stress_n of_o his_o hypothesis_n upon_o it_o in_o these_o remarkable_a word_n that_o if_o every_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n consider_v as_o a_o distinct_a person_n be_v not_o a_o distinct_a infinite_a and_o eternal_a mind_n there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o the_o dean_n notion_n def._n p._n 8._o at_o the_o end_n and_o the_o animadverter_n on_o the_o other_o side_n as_o positive_o deny_v each_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n to_o be_v a_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n or_o that_o the_o term_n distinct_a infinite_a mind_n can_v be_v true_o predicate_v of_o or_o belong_v to_o any_o of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o therefore_o for_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o matter_n and_o that_o even_o to_o this_o man_n understanding_n if_o possible_a we_o must_v always_o distinguish_v between_o attribute_v a_o distinct_a thing_n to_o each_o distinct_a person_n and_o between_o attribute_v a_o thing_n distinct_o to_o the_o say_a person_n for_o there_o be_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o these_o two_o and_o yet_o this_o author_n perpetual_o confound_v they_o and_o still_o from_o the_o latter_a infer_v the_o former_a which_o be_v a_o manifest_a paralogism_n à_fw-la dicto_fw-la secundùm_fw-la quid_fw-la ad_fw-la dictum_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la viz._n to_o conclude_v absolute_o a_o diverse_a or_o distinct_a thing_n from_o a_o diverse_a or_o distinct_a mode_n of_o a_o thing_n as_o for_o instance_n omnipotence_n belong_v to_o each_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n distinct_o but_o that_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o distinct_a omnipotence_n belong_v to_o each_o of_o they_o but_o only_o one_o and_o the_o same_o omnipotence_n belong_v to_o the_o three_o person_n according_a to_o three_o distinct_a way_n and_o what_o i_o have_v say_v of_o omnipotence_n hold_v equal_o in_o omniscience_n or_o infinite_a intelligence_n and_o in_o all_o the_o essential_a divine_a attribute_n beside_o for_o a_o thing_n be_v belong_v distinct_o to_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n distinct_o consider_v import_v no_o more_o but_o that_o it_o belong_v after_o a_o distinct_a manner_n to_o each_o of_o they_o so_o consider_v which_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a be_v may_v without_o any_o multiplication_n of_o itself_o very_o well_o do_v but_o say_v our_o author_n the_o athanasian_n form_n do_v not_o forbid_v we_o to_o attribute_v to_o each_o distinct_a person_n what_o be_v common_a to_o all_o three_o for_o it_o do_v it_o express_o by_o affirm_v that_o the_o father_n be_v uncreate_v the_o son_n uncreate_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n uncreate_v p._n 96._o l._n 10._o in_o which_o word_n as_o by_o the_o term_n uncreate_v i_o affirm_v aught_o to_o be_v understand_v a_o uncreate_v be_v or_o essence_n so_o i_o ready_o grant_v that_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n distinct_o consider_v be_v each_o of_o they_o a_o uncreate_v be_v but_o for_o all_o that_o shall_v never_o grant_v each_o of_o they_o to_o be_v a_o distinct_a uncreate_v be_v but_o utter_o deny_v that_o the_o father_n be_v a_o distinct_a uncreate_v be_v the_o son_n a_o distinct_a uncreate_v be_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n a_o distinct_a uncreate_v be_v as_o be_v all_o of_o they_o proposition_n absolute_o false_a and_o found_v upon_o this_o perpetual_a blunder_n that_o he_o shift_v the_o term_n distinct_a from_o the_o subject_a to_o the_o predicate_a still_o argue_v thus_o that_o because_o every_o distinct_a person_n distinct_o consider_v be_v a_o infinite_a mind_n therefore_o every_o such_o person_n so_o consider_v be_v a_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n which_o no_o logic_n or_o rule_n of_o consequence_n will_n or_o can_v infer_v and_o therefore_o whereas_o he_o make_v the_o animadverter_n give_v this_o as_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o athanasian_n predication_n that_o what_o be_v common_a to_o all_o three_o person_n do_v not_o distinct_o belong_v to_o each_o def._n p._n 96._o l._n 22._o i_o must_v tell_v he_o that_o it_o be_v false_a for_o the_o animadverter_n affirm_v the_o same_o nature_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o person_n to_o belong_v distinct_o to_o each_o person_n but_o nevertheless_o deny_v that_o in_o the_o same_o respect_n in_o which_o it_o be_v common_a to_o all_o it_o do_v or_o can_v belong_v distinct_o to_o any_o one_o for_o it_o belong_v to_o all_o as_o a_o essence_n or_o be_v absolute_o consider_v but_o it_o belong_v distinct_o to_o each_o person_n according_a to_o a_o distinct_a way_n or_o mode_n of_o subsist_v which_o the_o say_v be_v or_o essence_n have_v in_o each_o person_n and_o consequent_o since_o the_o same_o divine_a essence_n or_o be_v have_v three_o distinct_a way_n of_o subsist_v it_o do_v according_a to_o each_o of_o they_o belong_v distinct_o to_o each_o person_n yet_o still_o as_o i_o say_v before_o not_o as_o a_o distinct_a be_v or_o essence_n in_o any_o person_n and_o whereas_o this_o man_n state_n the_o reason_n of_o the_o athanasian_n form_n upon_o this_o that_o the_o divine_a perfection_n distinct_o exist_v in_o the_o divine_a person_n be_v so_o inseparable_o unite_v as_o to_o be_v essential_o one_o p._n 96._o l._n 26._o that_o be_v still_o trump_v the_o same_o old_a petitio_fw-la principii_fw-la upon_o the_o reader_n for_o it_o be_v still_o positive_o deny_v he_o and_o will_v be_v so_o for_o ever_o that_o a_o inseparable_a union_n of_o three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n be_v such_o a_o union_n possible_a can_v make_v the_o say_a
you_o no_o further_o trouble_v have_v with_o all_o the_o respect_n and_o reverence_n due_a to_o such_o great_a and_o renown_a body_n give_v you_o a_o account_n of_o the_o occasion_n of_o this_o address_n to_o you_o as_o a_o thing_n well_o deserve_v your_o most_o serious_a thought_n and_o represent_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o venerable_a old_a religion_n now_o at_o stake_n as_o in_o truth_n it_o be_v i_o humble_o leave_v the_o whole_a matter_n before_o you_o and_o remain_v as_o by_o duty_n and_o inclination_n equal_o bind_v honour_v sir_n your_o most_o faithful_a and_o devote_a servant_n a._n a._n a_o collection_n of_o several_a choice_n new_a theological_a term_n make_v use_v of_o in_o two_o book_n one_o entitle_v a_o vindication_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o ever_o bless_a trinity_n etc._n etc._n the_o other_o a_o defense_n of_o dr._n sherlock_n be_v notion_n of_o the_o trinity_n etc._n etc._n and_o first_o introduce_v by_o the_o say_a doctor_n for_o give_v the_o church_n a_o better_a explication_n and_o a_o clear_a notion_n of_o a_o trinity_n in_o unity_n than_o it_o have_v have_v for_o above_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n before_o which_o collection_n be_v as_o follow_v self-consciousness_n vind._n p._n 49._o l._n 27._o mutual_a consciousness_n vind._n p._n 52._o l._n 4._o natural_a self-consciousness_n def._n p._n 8._o l._n 7._o natural_a mutual_a consciousness_n def._n p._n 18._o l._n 8._o intimate_v conscious_a knowledge_n vind._n p._n 59_o l._n 4._o conscious_a life_n def._n p._n 60._o l._n 20._o self_n conscious_a principle_n def._n p._n 67._o l._n 16._o natural_a principle_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n def._n p._n 67._o l._n 22._o conscious_a union_n def._n p._n 9_o l._n 10._o natural_a unity_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n def._n p._n 33._o l._n 2._o communion_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n def._n p._n 72._o l._n 9_o self-conscious_a love_n and_o self-conscious_a complacency_n def._n p._n 68_o l._n 2_o &_o 4._o intellectual_a sensation_n def._n p._n 77._o l._n 16._o self-sensation_a def._n p._n 39_o l._n 24._o conscious_a sensation_n def._n p._n 8._o l._n 4._o self_n conscious_a sensation_n def._n p._n 7._o l._n 15._o natural_a self_n conscious_a sensation_n def._n p._n 7._o l._n 30._o natural_a mutual_a conscious_a sensation_n def._n p._n 8._o l._n 2._o feel_v each_o other_o knowledge_n vind._n p._n 56._o l._n 24._o self-consciousness_n between_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n vind._n p._n 60._o l._n 14._o the_o son_n be_v feel_v the_o father_n will_n and_o wisdom_n in_o himself_o vind._n p._n 60._o l._n 22._o the_o son_n the_o self_n conscious_a image_n of_o his_o father_n will_n and_o knowledge_n vind._n p._n 60._o at_o the_o end_n continuity_n of_o sensation_n def._n p._n 7._o l._n 12_o 13._o three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n vind._n p._n 66._o l._n 22._o one_o individual_a nature_n subsist_v thrice_o not_o by_o multiply_v but_o only_o by_o repeat_v itself_o def._n p._n 24._o l._n 2_o 3._o the_o divine_a nature_n repeat_v in_o its_o image_n without_o multiplication_n def._n p._n 37._o l._n 1._o the_o same_o substance_n repeat_v in_o three_o distinct_a subsistence_n def._n p._n 91._o l._n 8._o the_o same_o individual_a nature_n repeat_v in_o its_o live_a image_n def._n p._n 70._o l._n 4._o one_o eternal_a infinite_a mind_n repeat_v in_o three_o subsistence_n def._n p._n 94._o l._n 6_o etc._n etc._n which_o term_n with_o some_o other_o like-them_a be_v to_o be_v substitute_v in_o the_o room_n of_o nature_n essence_n substance_n subsistence_n suppositum_fw-la person_n hypostasis_fw-la and_o relation_n all_o which_o though_o constant_o use_v hitherto_o both_o by_o father_n and_o council_n yet_o serve_v only_o as_o this_o author_n affirm_v to_o pervert_v and_o confound_v man_n notion_n and_o discourse_n about_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o person_n ought_v utter_o to_o be_v explode_v and_o lay_v aside_o as_o mere_a gibberish_n and_o gipsy_n cant_n especial_o by_o such_o as_o account_v all_o greek_a and_o latin_a so_o too_o several_a new_a heterodox_n and_o extraordinary_a proposition_n partly_o in_o divinity_n and_o partly_o in_o philosophy_n extract_v out_o of_o the_o two_o forementioned_a book_n 1._o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n or_o spirit_n and_o not_o to_o hold_v so_o be_v both_o heresy_n and_o nonsense_n vind._n p._n 66._o l._n 25._o 2._o unless_o every_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n consider_v as_o a_o distinct_a person_n be_v allow_v to_o be_v a_o distinct_a infinite_a eternal_a mind_n we_o shall_v have_v nothing_o leave_v we_o but_o a_o trinity_n of_o mere_a modes_n name_n and_o posture_n defen_n pag._n 8._o lin_v 24._o &_o pag._n 30._o lin_v 24._o 3._o that_o which_o make_v a_o spirit_n whether_o finite_a or_o infinite_a and_o consequent_o each_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n which_o according_a to_o this_o author_n be_v three_o distinct_a infinite_a spirit_n one_o with_o itself_o and_o distinct_a from_o all_o other_o be_v self-consciousness_n and_o nothing_o else_o vind._n p._n 67._o lin_v 11._o p._n 68_o lin_v 5._o &_o 13._o &_o 74._o lin_v 15_o etc._n etc._n 4._o a_o natural_a self-consciousness_n make_v a_o natural_a person_n def._n p._n 8._o lin_v 7._o 5._o if_o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o personality_n be_v that_o which_o make_v a_o mind_n or_o person_n which_o with_o this_o author_n be_v always_o term_n convertible_a one_o with_o itself_o and_o distinguish_v it_o from_o all_o other_o than_o self-consciousness_n be_v the_o formal_a reason_n of_o personality_n def._n p._n 37._o l._n 8_o 9_o 10_o etc._n etc._n 6._o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v that_o which_o formal_o unite_v the_o divine_a person_n in_o nature_n or_o essence_n and_o make_v they_o all_o essential_o and_o numerical_o one_o god_n vind._n p._n 68_o l._n 6_o 7_o 8._o and_o p._n 84_o l._n 29_o and_o elsewhere_o frequent_o 7._o there_o be_v no_o other_o mutual_a in-being_a or_o indwelling_a of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o son_n in_o the_o father_n call_v by_o the_o father_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d conceivable_a or_o possible_a but_o by_o mutual_a consciousness_n def._n p._n 9_o l._n 15_o 16_o etc._n etc._n 8._o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v in_o the_o father_n as_o in_o their_o cause_n vind._n p._n 69._o l._n 29._o which_o term_n divine_v general_o decline_v the_o use_n of_o use_v the_o word_n principle_n instead_o thereof_o however_o this_o overthrow_v the_o forego_v proposition_n viz._n that_o the_o son_n can_v be_v no_o otherwise_o in_o the_o father_n than_o by_o mutual_a consciousness_n 9_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d use_v with_o reference_n to_o the_o divine_a person_n by_o the_o nicene_n father_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v a_o numerical_a unity_n of_o nature_n or_o essence_n in_o the_o say_a person_n def._n p._n 69._o l._n 1_o 2_o etc._n etc._n 10._o the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v partly_o specific_a partly_o numerical_a def._n p._n 17._o l._n 27._o 11._o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o conceive_v a_o more_o close_a and_o intimate_a union_n in_o nature_n than_o mutual_a consciousness_n def._n p._n 35._o l._n 22._o whereas_o a_o union_n in_o one_o numerical_a essence_n or_o nature_n be_v and_o must_v be_v in_o the_o very_a conception_n or_o notion_n of_o it_o great_a and_o more_o intimate_a as_o be_v the_o ground_n the_o reason_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o other_o 12._o the_o very_a nature_n and_o subsistence_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v whole_o relative_n def._n p._n 27._o l._n 21._o and_o for_o their_o subsistence_n i_o grant_v it_o to_o be_v so_o but_o if_o their_o nature_n be_v whole_o relative_n too_o i_o be_o sure_a there_o be_v nothing_o absolute_a belong_v to_o the_o deity_n 13._o the_o case_n of_o a_o man_n and_o his_o live_a image_n though_o even_o by_o this_o author_n be_v own_o confession_n a_o mere_a fiction_n or_o supposition_n be_v a_o plain_a account_n of_o the_o essential_a unity_n between_o god_n the_o father_n and_o god_n the_o son_n def._n p._n 21._o l._n 10._o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o a_o romance_n we_o have_v a_o clear_a explication_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o first_o and_o second_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o in_o two_o who_o be_v actual_o separate_v and_o loco-distant_a from_o one_o another_o we_o have_v a_o plain_a account_n of_o the_o union_n of_o two_o who_o both_o in_o their_o essence_n and_o person_n be_v actual_o and_o absolute_o inseparable_a 14._o if_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v consider_v as_o three_o infinite_a mind_n distinguish_v from_o each_o other_o by_o a_o self-consciousness_n of_o their_o own_o and_o essential_o unite_v to_o each_o other_o by_o a_o mutual_a consciousness_n which_o be_v the_o only_a way_n of_o distinguish_v and_o unite_n mind_n than_o a_o trinity_n
this_o he_o have_v tell_v we_o before_o in_o the_o 7_o the_o and_o 8_o the_o page_n of_o his_o vindication_n and_o that_o therefore_o not_o be_v able_a to_o express_v it_o adequate_o we_o must_v be_v content_v to_o express_v it_o as_o well_o as_o we_o can_v viz._n by_o so_o speak_v and_o so_o say_v and_o by_o continuity_n where_o there_o can_v be_v no_o part_n for_o such_o a_o plea_n though_o admit_v will_v manifest_o give_v up_o his_o cause_n by_o show_v that_o he_o have_v undertake_v to_o explain_v the_o unity_n in_o trinity_n by_o such_o a_o unity_n as_o he_o himself_o can_v neither_o conceive_v nor_o express_v we_o have_v see_v therefore_o what_o these_o two_o proposition_n viz._n that_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o a_o spirit_n consist_v in_o internal_a sensation_n and_o the_o unity_n of_o a_o spirit_n in_o continuity_n of_o sensation_n amount_v to_o but_o let_v we_o now_o see_v how_o he_o prove_v they_o for_o i_o fancy_n the_o world_n will_v hardly_o take_v they_o upon_o his_o bare_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o here_o suppose_v that_o i_o need_v not_o tell_v the_o reader_n that_o this_o author_n by_o sensation_n and_o continuity_n of_o sensation_n mean_v self-consciousness_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o his_o argument_n run_v thus_o so_o far_o as_o a_o man_n feel_v himself_o or_o be_v self-conscious_a so_o far_o he_o be_v one_o ●●tire_a person_n for_o it_o be_v a_o self-evident_a proposition_n that_o in_o a_o intelligent_a self-conscious_a be_v self_n can_v reach_v no_o further_o than_o he_o feel_v himself_o and_o i_o will_v desire_v any_o think_v man_n to_o tell_v i_o how_o he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o distinct_a and_o separate_a person_n from_o all_o other_o man_n but_o only_o by_o this_o that_o he_o feel_v his_o own_o thought_n volition_n passion_n etc._n etc._n but_o feel_v nothing_o of_o all_o this_o in_o other_o man_n p._n 7._o l._n 14._o but_o what_o wretched_a inconsequence_n be_v these_o self_n can_v reach_v or_o exist_v no_o further_o than_o a_o man_n feel_v himself_o and_o therefore_o a_o man_n feeling_n himself_o and_o his_o existence_n be_v that_o wherein_o self_n and_o the_o existence_n of_o self_n do_v consist_v it_o follow_v indeed_o from_o hence_o that_o his_o feel_n be_v the_o measure_n of_o his_o existence_n so_o that_o one_o can_v extend_v beyond_o the_o other_o but_o that_o do_v not_o therefore_o place_v his_o existence_n in_o his_o feel_n that_o he_o do_v exist_v a_o particular_a determine_a portion_n of_o matter_n can_v reach_v or_o exist_v beyond_o the_o quantity_n that_o bound_n or_o determine_v it_o but_o do_v the_o existence_n and_o be_v of_o that_o matter_n therefore_o consist_v in_o this_o quantity_n the_o body_n of_o a_o man_n can_v extend_v further_a than_o its_o just_a stature_n but_o do_v the_o body_n therefore_o consist_v in_o its_o stature_n again_o a_o man_n can_v as_o this_o author-says_a know_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o separate_a distinct_a person_n from_o all_o other_o man_n but_o by_o self-consciousness_n and_o internal_a sensation_n and_o therefore_o forsooth_o these_o be_v and_o must_v be_v the_o thing_n wherein_o his_o be_v a_o distinct_a person_n do_v consist_v and_o let_v any_o one_o alive_a show_n that_o this_o argument_n prove_v any_o more_o if_o he_o can_v but_o this_o man_n confound_v the_o principle_n of_o knowledge_n with_o the_o principle_n of_o be_v all_o along_o whereas_o the_o point_n here_o be_v whether_o the_o unity_n and_o distinction_n of_o a_o spirit_n consist_v in_o internal_a sensation_n as_o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o it_o not_o whether_o internal_a sensation_n be_v that_o whereby_o alone_o a_o spirit_n can_v know_v itself_o to_o be_v one_o with_o itself_o and_o distinct_a from_o all_o other_o for_o though_o this_o latter_a be_v grant_v to_o this_o author_n as_o often_o as_o he_o please_v yet_o the_o former_a will_v be_v as_o stiff_o deny_v he_o i_o find_v and_o feel_v myself_o to_o be_v one_o man_n and_o to_o be_v distinct_a and_o separate_a from_o all_o other_o but_o do_v this_o therefore_o make_v i_o to_o be_v so_o or_o do_v my_o be_v so_o consist_v in_o my_o feeling_n myself_o to_o be_v so_o one_o will_v think_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v ashamed_a to_o argue_v at_o this_o rate_n especial_o have_v be_v baffle_v in_o it_o more_o than_o once_o but_o it_o be_v a_o custom_n which_o he_o be_v grow_v old_a in_o to_o be_v baffle_v and_o to_o talk_v on_o and_o it_o be_v too_o late_o to_o cure_v he_o of_o it_o now_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n there_o be_v some_o other_o choice_a thing_n which_o deserve_v our_o consideration_n and_o particular_o this_o so_o far_o say_v he_o as_o a_o man_n feel_v himself_o or_o be_v self-conscious_a he_o be_v one_o entire_a person_n where_o this_o self-conscious_a sensation_n end_v he_o become_v a_o distinct_a and_o separate_a person_n p._n 7._o l._n 13._o but_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n to_o imagine_v any_o one_o to_o be_v a_o entire_a person_n and_o consequent_o one_o in_o himself_o and_o yet_o nor_o distinct_a from_o all_o other_o beside_o when_o the_o very_a essential_a notion_n of_o unity_n connote_v distinction_n too_o and_o when_o according_a to_o all_o the_o rule_n of_o philosophy_n that_o which_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o constitution_n to_o any_o thing_n be_v the_o principle_n also_o of_o distinction_n to_o the_o same_o every_o thing_n be_v distinguish_v from_o all_o other_o thing_n by_o what_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o continuity_n of_o sensation_n he_o say_v make_v a_o man_n one_o in_o himself_o and_o the_o end_n or_o ne_fw-la plus_fw-la ultrà_fw-la of_o that_o sensation_n make_v he_o a_o distinct_a person_n and_o yet_o he_o appeal_v to_o every_o think_v man_n whether_o he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o distinct_a person_n any_o other_o way_n than_o by_o this_o self-conscious_a sensation_n whereas_o he_o have_v say_v but_o just_a before_o that_o it_o be_v the_o end_n of_o this_o self-conscious_a sensation_n which_o make_v he_o a_o distinct_a person_n and_o if_o so_o can_v he_o then_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o distinct_a and_o separate_a person_n by_o that_o which_o must_v be_v at_o a_o end_n before_o he_o can_v be_v a_o distinct_a person_n certain_o a_o grosser_n and_o more_o fullsome_a contradiction_n scarce_o ever_o drop_v from_o the_o tongue_n or_o pen_n of_o man_n and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o nonsense_n in_o the_o high_a and_o gibberish_n true_o so_o call_v i_o dare_v aver_v that_o bedlam_n afford_v none_o but_o his_o compliment_n to_o the_o animadverter_n must_v not_o be_v pass_v over_o so_o for_o who_o instruction_n forsooth_o he_o say_v he_o be_v so_o large_a in_o his_o discourse_n about_o sensation_n and_o self-consciousness_n p._n 7._o for_o since_o he_o be_v so_o very_a kind_n he_o must_v give_v i_o leave_v to_o be_v as_o charitable_a in_o my_o admonition_n as_o he_o be_v liberal_a in_o his_o instruction_n and_o according_o to_o advise_v he_o for_o the_o future_a to_o keep_v his_o instruction_n to_o himself_o and_o what_o he_o can_v spare_v to_o bestow_v upon_o his_o boy_n that_o so_o they_o may_v not_o at_o their_o father_n age_n come_v to_o need_v such_o correction_n as_o their_o father_n have_v have_v and_o whereas_o he_o say_v the_o animadverter_n understand_v not_o one_o word_n of_o his_o hypothesis_n i_o must_v here_o tell_v he_o in_o the_o animadverter_n name_n that_o he_o account_v it_o no_o disparagement_n at_o all_o to_o any_o man_n of_o sense_n not_o to_o understand_v he_o who_o speak_v none_o but_o he_o proceed_v and_o to_o show_v we_o how_o methodical_a he_o be_v in_o his_o absurdity_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o dean_n as_o certain_o no_o man_n live_v be_v ever_o so_o much_o a_o dean_n in_o his_o own_o eye_n have_v observe_v that_o the_o unity_n of_o a_o single_a spirit_n consist_v in_o such_o a_o natural_a self-conscious_a sensation_n this_o lead_v he_o on_o to_o that_o other_o notion_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n which_o may_v be_v between_o three_o distinct_a spirit_n and_o make_v they_o natural_o one_o as_o much_o as_o three_o can_v be_v one_o p._n 7._o l._n 29._o and_o that_o in_o good_a earnest_n be_v a_o limitation_n with_o a_o witness_n a_o limitation_n amount_v to_o a_o utter_a negation_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o be_v apply_v to_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o three_o distinct_a absolute_a being_n which_o three_o distinct_a spirit_n certain_o be_v to_o be_v one_o by_o one_o numerical_a nature_n belong_v in_o common_a to_o they_o but_o beside_o observe_v the_o fallacy_n couch_v under_o this_o ambiguous_a parenthesis_n as_o much_o as_o three_o can_v be_v one_o for_o by_o three_o here_o he_o may_v either_o mean_v three_o spirit_n or_o three_o person_n and_o he_o impose_v gross_o upon_o his_o reader_n and_o beg_v the_o question_n beside_o if_o he_o
be_v more_o proper_a term_n use_v by_o the_o church_n to_o express_v a_o trinity_n in_o unity_n by_o than_o those_o ancient_a one_o make_v use_v of_o all_o along_o about_o it_o viz._n than_o three_o subsistence_n in_o one_o individual_a nature_n which_o he_o say_v differ_v nothing_o from_o each_o other_o but_o in_o their_o different_a manner_n of_o subsistence_n these_o be_v his_o word_n and_o when_o the_o impartial_a reader_n have_v peruse_v they_o and_o compare_v they_o with_o what_o be_v cite_v out_o of_o his_o vindication_n concern_v this_o very_a term_n subsistence_n and_o subsistence_n among_o other_o set_v down_o in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o animadversion_n and_o the_o 63_o and_o 64_o the_o page_n i_o suppose_v he_o will_v find_v it_o high_a time_n to_o bless_v himself_o for_o i_o here_o challenge_v this_o shameless_a man_n to_o reconcile_v or_o do_v any_o thing_n like_o reconcile_n what_o he_o say_v here_o to_o what_o he_o have_v say_v there_o if_o he_o can_v and_o yet_o as_o great_a a_o perversion_n as_o a_o word_n mis-applied_n and_o force_v from_o its_o true_a signification_n must_v inevitable_o cause_v in_o so_o nice_a as_o well_o as_o great_a a_o point_n as_o this_o be_v it_o be_v not_o however_o bare_o this_o author_n be_v not_o hereafter_o use_v this_o term_n three_o mind_n as_o equipollent_a to_o three_o person_n that_o will_n justify_v he_o if_o he_o still_o retain_v the_o sense_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o i_o must_v here_o tell_v he_o that_o if_o he_o hold_v the_o three_o divine_a person_n to_o be_v three_o distinct_a infinite_a absolute_a being_n three_o distinct_a infinite_a spirit_n three_o distinct_a infinite_a substance_n as_o substance_n stand_v contradistinct_a to_o subsistence_n let_v he_o abandon_v and_o lay_v aside_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n mind_n never_o so_o much_o he_o be_v yet_o a_o tritheist_n and_o a_o real_a assertor_n of_o three_o go_n but_o after_o all_o the_o judicious_a reader_n may_v here_o observe_v what_o a_o pleasant_a manager_n of_o controversy_n this_o man_n be_v for_o he_o first_o assert_v the_o three_o divine_a person_n to_o be_v three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n or_o spirit_n affirm_v withal_o in_o most_o impudent_a manner_n that_o to_o hold_v otherwise_o be_v heresy_n and_o nonsense_n see_v his_o vindicat._n p._n 66._o lin_v 26._o but_o when_o the_o world_n cry_v out_o of_o this_o scandalous_a tritheism_n and_o the_o animadverter_n even_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o animadverter_n spightfull_a enemy_n 28._o have_v thorough_o confute_v it_o and_o on_o the_o contrary_a maintain_v that_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v three_o distinct_a subsistence_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a eternal_a mind_n include_v in_o or_o belong_v to_o all_o and_o each_o of_o they_o why_o then_o this_o man_n according_a to_o his_o excellent_a and_o know_a talon_n of_o tack_v about_o fair_o come_v over_o to_o his_o adversary_n so_o far_o as_o to_o proclaim_v shameless_o to_o the_o world_n that_o though_o he_o speak_v indeed_o of_o mind_n yet_o he_o mean_v only_o subsistence_n whereas_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o mind_n shall_v be_v subsistence_n or_o subsistence_n mind_n such_o a_o felicity_n be_v it_o for_o a_o man_n who_o word_n be_v so_o apt_a to_o throw_v he_o into_o a_o plunge_v to_o have_v a_o trusty_a mean_v still_o ready_a at_o hand_n to_o fetch_v he_o out_o again_o but_o if_o this_o be_v to_o defend_v a_o hypothesis_n than_o the_o way_n to_o carry_v a_o cause_n be_v to_o give_v it_o up_o and_o the_o sure_a conquest_n to_o quit_v the_o field_n in_o the_o next_o place_n he_o pass_v from_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n to_o the_o unity_n and_o identity_n of_o their_o divine_a nature_n and_o here_o according_a to_o his_o constant_a custom_n of_o charge_v the_o father_n with_o some_o defect_n or_o other_o in_o express_v themselves_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o be_v at_o a_o great_a loss_n for_o word_n to_o express_v this_o latter_a by_o than_o the_o former_a p._n 16._o l._n 26._o there_o be_v but_o one_o word_n to_o do_v it_o viz._n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o this_o too_o of_o itself_o not_o sufficient_a concern_v which_o i_o must_v tell_v he_o in_o the_o first_o place_n that_o the_o truth_n receive_v no_o prejudice_n at_o all_o from_o there_o be_v no_o other_o one_o word_n to_o express_v this_o unity_n or_o identity_n of_o the_o godhead_n in_o the_o divine_a person_n by_o since_o god_n be_v thank_v there_o be_v several_a very_o significant_a word_n and_o way_n to_o explain_v this_o one_o word_n by_o but_o the_o main_a question_n be_v whether_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v sufficient_a to_o express_v this_o or_o no_o and_o here_o i_o must_v tell_v this_o presume_a man_n who_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v so_o first_o that_o the_o nicene_n father_n and_o the_o catholic_n church_n with_o they_o then_o think_v it_o so_o and_o second_o that_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n necessary_o prove_v it_o so_o and_o in_o order_n to_o this_o i_o will_v have_v he_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o be_v measure_v by_o the_o proper_a condition_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o it_o relate_v to_o and_o therefore_o though_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v in_o itself_o be_v indifferent_a to_o signify_v either_o a_o specific_a or_o numerical_a agreement_n in_o nature_n according_a as_o the_o nature_n be_v to_o which_o it_o refer_v yet_o when_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v join_v with_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d import_v such_o a_o essential_a unity_n in_o it_o as_o render_v it_o uncapable_a of_o all_o multiplication_n as_o a_o eus_n summà_fw-fr perfectum_fw-la or_o a_o infinite_a nature_n in_o the_o very_a notion_n of_o it_o must_v be_v there_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d must_v of_o necessity_n signify_v a_o agreement_n in_o a_o numerical_a unity_n and_o identity_n of_o nature_n and_o no_o other_o for_o still_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o measure_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o according_o i_o do_v affirm_v against_o this_o man_n that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o specific_a unity_n or_o identity_n or_o any_o thing_n like_o it_o or_o analogous_n to_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o divine_a nature_n but_o only_o a_o numerical_a unity_n and_o no_o more_o which_o be_v the_o high_a and_o perfect_a sort_n of_o unity_n be_v above_o and_o instead_o of_o all_o other_o unity_n whatsoever_o and_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o be_v because_o all_o specific_a unity_n of_o nature_n be_v found_v in_o the_o imperfection_n and_o defect_n of_o the_o say_a nature_n as_o render_v it_o capable_a of_o multiplication_n which_o be_v certain_o a_o defect_n and_o let_v he_o take_v this_o rule_n with_o he_o for_o once_o which_o i_o defy_v he_o to_o overthrow_v viz._n that_o in_o naturam_fw-la non_fw-la multiplicabilem_fw-la non_fw-la cadit_fw-la vnitas_fw-la specifica_fw-la for_o as_o much_o as_o specific_a unity_n be_v but_o one_o common_a conception_n of_o the_o mind_n gather_v from_o the_o agreement_n it_o find_v in_o a_o plurality_n of_o particular_a nature_n among_o themselves_o as_o every_o create_a individual_a have_v its_o particular_a distinct_a nature_n to_o itself_o and_o not_o a_o part_n of_o a_o common_a nature_n share_v among_o all_o the_o individual_n but_o will_v this_o man_n affirm_v that_o there_o be_v three_o particular_a divine_a nature_n out_o of_o which_o the_o mind_n may_v form_v such_o a_o specific_a unity_n as_o we_o have_v be_v speak_v of_o let_v he_o therefore_o either_o renounce_v his_o very_a share_n in_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n or_o disclaim_v this_o abominable_a absurdity_n of_o a_o specific_a unity_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n or_o of_o any_o thing_n so_o much_o as_o like_v it_o or_o analogous_n to_o it_o or_o in_o his_o own_o word_n p._n 17._o that_o perfect_o answer_v it_o and_o whereas_o he_o allege_n the_o father_n explain_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o example_n of_o a_o specific_a unity_n in_o create_a being_n i_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o father_n use_v not_o these_o example_n as_o instance_n for_o representation_n of_o the_o like_a unity_n among_o the_o divine_a person_n but_o as_o a_o ground_n for_o argue_v aà_fw-la minore_fw-la ad_fw-la majus_fw-la against_o the_o arian_n who_o will_v not_o allow_v so_o much_o as_o a_o specific_a unity_n of_o nature_n between_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n whereupon_o the_o father_n thus_o argue_v against_o they_o if_o you_o will_v allow_v the_o generation_n of_o a_o son_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n certain_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v more_o perfect_a or_o at_o least_o as_o perfect_a as_o that_o
the_o say_a person_n but_o the_o former_a be_v true_a and_o therefore_o the_o latter_a must_v be_v so_o too_o the_o consquence_n be_v evident_a from_o this_o that_o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o a_o thing_n can_v be_v conceive_v of_o as_o posterior_n to_o that_o of_o which_o it_o be_v the_o formal_a reason_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o assumption_n be_v as_o clear_v because_o unity_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n be_v the_o first_o affection_n or_o attribute_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n whether_o as_o consider_v in_o itself_o or_o as_o subsist_v in_o the_o three_o person_n and_o therefore_o must_v be_v conceive_v of_o antecedent_o to_o any_o other_o particular_a perfection_n or_o attribute_n belong_v to_o the_o same_o and_o consequent_o may_v be_v conceive_v of_o without_o it_o too_o which_o make_v it_o impossible_a for_o any_o such_o perfection_n or_o attribute_n to_o be_v the_o formal_a reason_n of_o this_o unity_n according_o since_o there_o be_v the_o same_o order_n of_o priority_n and_o posteriority_n between_o such_o of_o the_o divine_a attribute_n as_o immediate_o affect_v and_o relate_v to_o the_o divine_a essence_n or_o be_v and_o such_o as_o immediate_o import_v and_o relate_v to_o some_o divine_a act_n which_o there_o be_v between_o be_v and_o action_n themselves_o and_o since_o withal_o unity_n be_v the_o first_o and_o principal_n of_o the_o former_a sort_n and_o the_o divine_a intellect_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a immediate_a principle_n of_o all_o act_n of_o consciousness_n in_o the_o divine_a person_n be_v only_o a_o attribute_n or_o perfection_n of_o the_o second_o sort_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o say_a principle_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n shall_v be_v the_o formal_a reason_n of_o the_o essential_a unity_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n or_o that_o wherein_o the_o say_a unity_n of_o essence_n proper_o consist_v 2._o the_o formal_a reason_n that_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v essential_o one_o god_n be_v the_o community_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o individual_a divine_a nature_n to_o the_o say_v three_o person_n but_o a_o principle_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v not_o a_o community_n of_o the_o same_o individual_a nature_n to_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n and_o therefore_o such_o a_o principle_n be_v not_o the_o formal_a reason_n that_o the_o say_v three_o person_n be_v essential_o one_o god_n the_o major_n be_v prove_v thus_o because_o we_o can_v conceive_v such_o a_o community_n of_o the_o same_o individual_a divine_a nature_n to_o the_o three_o person_n without_o conceive_v a_o numerical_a unity_n of_o the_o say_a nature_n in_o the_o say_a person_n nor_o vice_n versa_fw-la can_v we_o conceive_v the_o latter_a without_o the_o former_a the_o minor_a be_v prove_v thus_o no_o particular_a perfection_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v proper_o and_o formal_o a_o community_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n consider_v under_o all_o its_o perfection_n but_o the_o community_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n to_o the_o three_o person_n be_v a_o community_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n so_o consider_v and_o a_o principle_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v but_o a_o particular_a perfection_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n viz._n the_o divine_a intellect_n which_o be_v the_o divine_a nature_n as_o formal_o determine_v to_o one_o particular_a sort_n of_o act_n and_o object_n and_o therefore_o this_o principle_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v not_o formal_o the_o community_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n to_o all_o the_o three_o person_n 3._o if_o the_o principle_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n in_o the_o divine_a person_n must_v be_v multiply_v according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o say_a person_n than_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o this_o principle_n shall_v give_v a_o numerical_a unity_n of_o essence_n to_o those_o person_n but_o according_a to_o this_o author_n hypothesis_n the_o principle_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v and_o must_v be_v multiply_v according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n and_o therefore_o the_o say_a principle_n can_v never_o be_v the_o formal_a reason_n of_o a_o numerical_a essential_a unity_n in_o they_o the_o consequence_n be_v evident_a for_o three_o numerical_o distinct_a principle_n can_v never_o as_o such_o formal_o give_v numerical_a unity_n to_o any_o thing_n and_o much_o less_o to_o the_o most_o transcendent_o simple_a and_o uncompounded_a of_o all_o being_n as_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o three_o person_n confess_o be_v and_o then_o as_o for_o the_o assumption_n viz._n that_o according_a to_o this_o author_n hypothesis_n the_o principle_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n must_v be_v multiply_v according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n this_o also_o be_v as_o evident_a because_o he_o assert_v the_o three_o divine_a person_n to_o be_v three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n which_o be_v three_o distinct_a essence_n and_o since_o they_o be_v so_o i_o affirm_v that_o the_o principle_n of_o action_n in_o every_o mind_n or_o essence_n be_v and_o must_v be_v as_o distinct_a as_o the_o mind_n or_o essence_n which_o it_o belong_v to_o and_o which_o it_o be_v comprehend_v in_o and_o therefore_o since_o these_o three_o numerical_o distinct_a mind_n must_v have_v each_o of_o they_o a_o numerical_o distinct_a principle_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o these_o three_o distinct_a principle_n shall_v either_o have_v a_o numerical_a unity_n themselves_o or_o give_v a_o numerical_a unity_n of_o essence_n to_o the_o say_v three_o infinite_a mind_n or_o to_o the_o divine_a person_n which_o this_o author_n hold_v to_o be_v three_o such_o mind_n 4._o if_o a_o principle_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n may_v make_v three_o infinite_a mind_n essential_o one_o infinite_a mind_n than_o it_o may_v also_o make_v three_o infinite_a intelligent_a person_n essential_o one_o infinite_a intelligent_a person_n but_o this_o latter_a be_v impossible_a and_o therefore_o the_o former_a must_v needs_o be_v so_o too_o nevertheless_o the_o consequence_n be_v evident_a because_o according_a to_o this_o author_n infinite_a mind_n and_o infinite_a intelligent_a person_n be_v term_n perfect_o equipollent_a p._n 32_o l._n 23._o and_o consequent_o whatsoever_o be_v affirm_v or_o deny_v of_o the_o one_o must_v be_v equal_o affirm_v or_o deny_v of_o the_o other_o so_o that_o if_o it_o be_v true_o affirm_v that_o three_o distinct_a infinite_a mind_n may_v by_o a_o principle_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n become_v essential_o one_o infinite_a mind_n it_o may_v be_v as_o true_o affirm_v that_o three_o infinite_a intelligent_a person_n may_v become_v one_o infinite_a intelligent_a person_n since_o there_o be_v a_o perfect_a equipollence_n in_o these_o two_o predication_n as_o for_o the_o assumption_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o three_o infinite_a intelligent_a person_n to_o be_v one_o infinite_a intelligent_a person_n this_o be_v so_o self-evident_a that_o i_o suppose_v neither_o my_o reader_n not_o my_o adversary_n unless_o a_o sabellian_n will_v expect_v any_o further_a proof_n of_o it_o these_o be_v my_o reason_n upon_o which_o i_o conclude_v that_o this_o new_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o a_o principle_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n can_v formal_o give_v a_o numerical_a unity_n of_o essence_n to_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o this_o defender_n who_o be_v such_o a_o utter_a stranger_n to_o all_o metaphysical_a knowledge_n will_v call_v these_o argument_n as_o he_o do_v other_o in_o p._n 2._o l._n 20._o of_o this_o defence_n thin_a airy_a weapon_n though_o by_o his_o favour_n they_o may_v be_v never_o the_o less_o pierce_a for_o that_o but_o i_o will_v have_v he_o know_v that_o argument_n draw_v from_o and_o found_v upon_o the_o general_a reason_n and_o notion_n of_o thing_n be_v as_o strong_a and_o conclusive_a as_o any_o that_o be_v take_v from_o any_o particular_a material_a object_n incur_v into_o the_o sense_n and_o as_o for_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o divine_a person_n the_o only_a subject_n now_o before_o we_o since_o it_o be_v a_o be_v absolute_o and_o entire_o simple_a and_o as_o the_o school_n call_v it_o simplicissimè_fw-la simplex_fw-la i_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n of_o reason_n to_o discourse_v of_o it_o philosophical_o upon_o but_o the_o natural_a order_n and_o distinction_n of_o our_o conception_n of_o it_o found_v upon_o the_o several_a modes_n act_n and_o object_n belong_v to_o it_o and_o this_o man_n who_o explode_v all_o prius_fw-la and_o posterius_fw-la in_o the_o conception_n which_o our_o reason_n form_n of_o the_o deity_n be_v extreme_o ridiculous_a and_o yet_o withal_o affirm_v three_o absolute_a distinct_a being_n as_o three_o mind_n be_v in_o one_o numerical_a absolute_a and_o most_o simple_a be_v be_v if_o possible_a infinite_o more_o so_o and_o therefore_o without_o add_v any_o thing_n further_o i_o leave_v the_o reader_n to_o make_v himself_o merry_a with_o that_o silly_a swagger_a conclusion_n which_o he_o
of_o essence_n nature_n or_o substance_n common_a to_o all_o three_o but_o i_o shall_v now_o apply_v myself_o particular_o to_o answer_v his_o noisome_a extravagant_a ignorance_n in_o reproach_v even_o to_o the_o degree_n of_o insultation_n all_o use_n or_o admission_n of_o priority_n and_o posteriority_n of_o conception_n in_o apprehend_v or_o discourse_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o in_o order_n to_o this_o i_o shall_v lay_v before_o the_o reader_n some_o of_o his_o expression_n concern_v it_o as_o p._n 73._o l._n 20._o after_o all_o this_o huff_a and_o swagger_v say_v he_o this_o notable_a dispute_n issue_v in_o a_o mere_a metaphysical_a subtlety_n about_o the_o natural_a order_n of_o our_o conception_n of_o thing_n but_o by_o his_o favour_n they_o be_v not_o mere_a conception_n and_o no_o more_o but_o conception_n found_v in_o the_o nature_n and_o reason_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v employ_v about_o as_o it_o exert_v different_a act_n respect_n different_a object_n and_o sustain_v different_a relation_n and_o consideration_n thereupon_o but_o he_o go_v on_o what_o confound_a work_n say_v he_o do_v this_o make_v with_o the_o pure_a simple_a uncompounded_a eternal_a nature_n of_o god_n so_o to_o prove_v a_o priority_n or_o posteriority_n of_o be_v or_o causality_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n from_o the_o order_n of_o our_o conception_n p._n 74._o l._n 22._o but_o can_v this_o man_n make_v it_o appear_v that_o any_o philosopher_n and_o divine_a do_v this_o no_o they_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o prove_v a_o priority_n or_o posteriority_n of_o be_v or_o causality_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n from_o the_o order_n of_o our_o conception_n for_o they_o profess_o disavow_v it_o but_o they_o say_v and_o affirm_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o discourse_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n by_o any_o humane_a reason_n but_o by_o such_o a_o order_n of_o priority_n and_o posteriority_n in_o our_o conception_n of_o it_o this_o sir_n be_v their_o affirmation_n and_o the_o other_o be_v your_o lye_n for_o neither_o do_v philosopher_n nor_o divine_n ascribe_v these_o thing_n to_o god_n formal_o but_o only_o virtual_o and_o eminent_o viz._n that_o god_n as_o a_o pure_a simple_a act_n or_o be_v perform_v all_o those_o act_n immediate_o by_o one_o simple_a efficiency_n or_o exertion_n of_o himself_o which_o a_o finite_a be_v can_v do_v but_o by_o several_a act_n power_n faculty_n and_o sometime_o part_v enable_v it_o to_o operate_v and_o produce_v thing_n no_o man_n i_o say_v ascribe_v these_o thing_n to_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o strict_a and_o philosophical_a sense_n of_o the_o term_n but_o by_o way_n of_o analogy_n to_o what_o reason_n observe_v in_o the_o creature_n and_o that_o also_o found_v upon_o god_n own_o condescension_n to_o describe_v and_o represent_v himself_o to_o we_o in_o this_o manner_n and_o what_o the_o animadverter_n say_v in_o the_o five_o preliminary_n of_o his_o four_o chapter_n be_v sufficient_a to_o blow_v off_o all_o these_o senseless_a cavil_n viz._n that_o when_o the_o term_n cause_n formal_a reason_n constituent_a or_o productive_a principle_n and_o the_o like_a be_v use_v about_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o person_n they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o applicable_a to_o they_o in_o the_o strict_a and_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o say_a term_n but_o only_o by_o way_n of_o analogy_n as_o real_o mean_v no_o more_o than_o a_o causal_n or_o necessary_a dependence_n of_o one_o notion_n or_o conceptus_fw-la objectivus_fw-la upon_o another_o so_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o the_o mind_n to_o conceive_v distinct_o of_o the_o one_o but_o as_o depend_v upon_o or_o proceed_v from_o the_o other_o in_o answer_n to_o all_o which_o i_o defy_v this_o man_n to_o speak_v three_o word_n of_o sense_n if_o he_o can_v and_o whereas_o he_o ignorant_o say_v that_o all_o such_o conception_n be_v false_a p._n 74._o l._n 33._o i_o must_v tell_v he_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o where_o nothing_o be_v affirm_v or_o deny_v as_o in_o bare_a conception_n nothing_o be_v there_o can_v be_v no_o falsehood_n it_o be_v a_o common_a rule_n and_o maxim_n in_o philosophy_n and_o not_o to_o be_v over_o bear_v by_o this_o weak_a man_n little_a objection_n that_o abstrahentium_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la mendacium_fw-la for_o to_o consider_v one_o thing_n without_o another_o though_o it_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v without_o the_o other_o be_v no_o falsehood_n and_o the_o chief_a thing_n by_o which_o we_o form_n several_a distinct_a conception_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v this_o abstraction_n by_o which_o the_o mind_n first_o consider_v one_o conceptus_fw-la objectivus_fw-la without_o the_o other_o and_o then_o consider_v and_o compare_v both_o together_o according_a to_o the_o respect_n they_o may_v have_v to_o each_o other_o and_o the_o natural_a order_n which_o that_o place_n they_o in_o but_o i_o shall_v try_v what_o metal_n that_o confidence_n be_v make_v of_o which_o thus_o explode_v all_o priority_n and_o posteriority_n in_o our_o conception_n of_o god_n by_o these_o follow_a question_n as_o first_o i_o demand_v of_o this_o man_n whether_o he_o do_v not_o own_o a_o necessity_n of_o our_o form_n several_a inadequate_a conception_n of_o god_n and_o that_o we_o have_v no_o other_o way_n of_o conceive_v of_o he_o this_o i_o be_o sure_a he_o have_v assert_v several_a time_n and_o if_o he_o have_v not_o the_o whole_a world_n do_v and_o therefore_o in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o ask_v he_o whether_o many_o of_o these_o inadequate_a conception_n do_v not_o imply_v a_o necessary_a and_o essential_a dependence_n of_o one_o upon_o the_o other_o and_o if_o so_o whether_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n to_o form_v a_o conception_n of_o one_o thing_n depend_v upon_o another_o but_o seoundùm_fw-la prius_fw-la &_o posterius_fw-la again_o i_o demand_v of_o he_o whether_o we_o can_v consider_v god_n as_o a_o intelligent_a be_v and_o agent_n endue_v with_o understanding_n will_n and_o power_n as_o he_o in_o scripture_n represent_v himself_o and_o as_o we_o must_v conceive_v of_o he_o if_o we_o conceive_v and_o discourse_v of_o he_o at_o all_o without_o conceive_v of_o he_o as_o willing_a a_o thing_n before_o he_o do_v it_o and_o as_o understand_v it_o before_o he_o will_v it_o and_o again_o i_o demand_v of_o he_o whether_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o person_n consider_v all_o together_o be_v not_o one_o pure_a simple_a uncompounded_a act_n or_o be_v i_o be_o sure_a all_o orthodox_n divine_v affirm_v it_o and_o yet_o i_o demand_v of_o this_o man_n whether_o he_o or_o any_o one_o alive_a can_v conceive_v of_o the_o father_n as_o beget_n and_o of_o the_o son_n as_o beget_v and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o proceed_n from_o both_o without_o a_o priority_n and_o posteriority_n in_o the_o conception_n we_o form_n of_o they_o and_o last_o to_o instance_n in_o his_o own_o whimsical_a notion_n of_o self-consciousness_n and_o mutual_a consciousness_n i_o challenge_v he_o to_o prove_v it_o possible_a for_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n to_o conceive_v how_o the_o divine_a person_n can_v be_v mutual_o conscious_a to_o one-another_o but_o subsequent_o to_o each_o person_n be_v be_v first_o conscious_a to_o himself_o forasmuch_o as_o their_o several_a self-consciousnesses_a be_v proper_o the_o object_n of_o their_o mutual_a consciousness_n and_o so_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n can_v but_o be_v before_o it_o nay_o and_o to_o go_v further_o do_v not_o this_o very_a man_n in_o state_v his_o self-consciousness_n and_o mutual_a consciousness_n distinguish_v between_o the_o act_n and_o the_o principle_n which_o though_o it_o be_v but_o a_o mere_a shift_n as_o have_v be_v show_v be_v yet_o a_o good_a argument_n against_o himself_o for_o can_v any_o one_o conceive_v of_o a_o principle_n but_o as_o prior_n to_o the_o act_n in_o fine_a i_o challenge_v this_o equal_o insolent_a and_o heterodox_n man_n to_o satisfy_v the_o world_n about_o he_o by_o a_o clear_a and_o positive_a answer_n to_o these_o two_o question_n 1_o sy_n whether_o all_o divine_n schoolman_n and_o philosopher_n except_v perhaps_o such_o as_o conradus_n vorstius_n and_o crellius_n in_o their_o book_n de_fw-fr attributis_fw-la dei_fw-la do_v not_o in_o treat_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n unanimous_o acknowledge_v and_o affirm_v that_o god_n be_v a_o pure_a simple_a uncompounded_a act_n essence_n or_o be_v and_o 2_o dly_z whether_o notwithstanding_o this_o acknowledgement_n and_o affirmation_n they_o do_v not_o universal_o treat_v of_o god_n in_o term_n necessary_o import_v and_o require_v a_o priority_n and_o posteriority_n of_o conception_n but_o why_o do_v i_o dispute_v against_o such_o sottish_a paradox_n which_o all_o the_o school_n in_o christendom_n will_v hiss_v or_o rather_o spit_v at_o the_o author_n of_o they_o for_o but_o this_o poor_a ambitious_a animalculum_fw-la gloriae_fw-la have_v be_v always_o affect_v to_o
signalise_v his_o little_a self_n by_o the_o character_n of_o hold_v what_o the_o whole_a world_n beside_o deny_v and_o of_o deny_v what_o it_o hold_v and_o now_o in_o the_o close_a of_o this_o argument_n p._n 75._o l._n 20._o we_o have_v he_o again_o fly_v off_o from_o his_o first_o hypothesis_n in_o which_o he_o have_v with_o so_o much_o earnestness_n affirm_v self-consciousness_n to_o be_v that_o which_o make_v the_o divine_a person_n original_o distinct_a both_o from_o one-another_o and_o all_o other_o thing_n beside_o and_o mutual_a consciousness_n to_o be_v that_o which_o make_v they_o natural_o and_o essential_o one_o i_o say_v we_o have_v he_o quite_o fall_v down_o from_o their_o make_n to_o their_o bare_a suppose_n infer_v and_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v so_o which_o as_o the_o whole_a world_n must_v needs_o fee_v be_v whole_o another_o thing_n and_o absolute_o quit_v and_o give_v up_o the_o first_o assertion_n but_o that_o by_o his_o good_a leave_n shall_v not_o serve_v his_o turn_n for_o as_o he_o have_v be_v several_a time_n tell_v he_o shall_v be_v still_o hold_v to_o it_o and_o just_o account_v a_o baffle_a person_n if_o he_o do_v not_o make_v it_o good_a for_o in_o all_o philosophy_n and_o even_o in_o common_a sense_n make_v be_v one_o thing_n and_o prove_v be_v another_o and_o therefore_o whereas_o he_o say_v in_o the_o last_o place_n viz._n p._n 75._o lin_v 30._o that_o to_o dispute_v about_o the_o cause_n of_o self-consciousness_n and_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v to_o dispute_v about_o the_o naked_a essence_n or_o essential_a property_n of_o thing_n which_o the_o dean_n reject_v from_o the_o beginning_n as_o without_o the_o compass_n of_o human_a knowledge_n there_o be_v in_o these_o word_n several_a thing_n to_o be_v remark_v upon_o as_o first_o i_o must_v tell_v he_o that_o the_o dispute_v here_o be_v not_o direct_o about_o the_o cause_n of_o self-consciousness_n or_o mutual_a consciousness_n but_o whether_o self-consciousness_n itself_o be_v the_o cause_n or_o formal_a reason_n of_o personality_n personal_a unity_n and_o distinction_n and_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v the_o formal_a cause_n or_o reason_n of_o the_o essential_a unity_n and_o identity_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o in_o the_o next_o place_n suppose_v that_o the_o dispute_v here_o be_v about_o the_o cause_n of_o self-consciousness_n and_o mutual_a consciousness_n yet_o i_o deny_v that_o to_o dispute_v of_o they_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o cause_n or_o a_o effect_n be_v to_o dispute_v about_o the_o naked_a essence_n or_o essential_a property_n of_o thing_n forasmuch_o as_o we_o may_v consider_v and_o dispute_v about_o the_o essence_n and_o property_n of_o thing_n without_o any_o consideration_n of_o their_o causality_n at_o all_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o may_v know_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v actual_o a_o cause_n and_o dispute_v of_o it_o as_o such_o though_o we_o can_v tell_v what_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o say_a thing_n be_v we_o do_v not_o indeed_o know_v that_o be_v by_o a_o immediate_a inspection_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o what_o the_o essence_n or_o form_n of_o thing_n be_v but_o we_o know_v that_o in_o every_o thing_n the_o essence_n or_o form_n of_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n or_o principle_n of_o all_o the_o act_n proceed_v from_o it_o and_o belong_v to_o it_o and_o consequent_o that_o no_o act_n so_o proceed_v from_o the_o say_a thing_n can_v be_v the_o essence_n or_o form_n of_o it_o but_o 3_o dly_a and_o last_o in_o reply_n to_o his_o say_n that_o the_o dean_n from_o the_o beginning_n reject_v all_o dispute_n about_o the_o essence_n and_o essential_a property_n of_o thing_n as_o without_o the_o compass_n of_o human_a knowledge_n i_o do_v here_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o the_o 9th_o and_o 10_o page_n of_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o animadversion_n to_o see_v there_o how_o horrible_o he_o contradict_v himself_o upon_o this_o subject_a for_o there_o it_o be_v prove_v against_o he_o out_o of_o page_n 7._o of_o his_o vindic._n lin_v 20._o that_o he_o say_v that_o the_o essence_n of_o thing_n can_v be_v know_v but_o only_o their_o property_n and_o quality_n which_o sure_o infer_v that_o then_o their_o property_n may_v be_v know_v and_o again_o that_o as_o for_o the_o essential_a property_n operation_n and_o power_n of_o matter_n sense_n experience_n and_o observation_n will_v tell_v we_o what_o they_o be_v vindicat._n p._n 8._o line_n 15._o which_o passage_n i_o will_v have_v he_o reconcile_v to_o what_o he_o have_v say_v here_o viz._n that_o the_o essential_a property_n of_o thing_n be_v without_o the_o compass_n of_o human_a knowledge_n which_o how_o they_o can_v be_v and_o yet_o sense_n experience_n and_o observation_n be_v able_a to_o give_v we_o such_o a_o account_n of_o they_o as_o to_o tell_v we_o what_o they_o be_v i_o must_v confess_v i_o can_v comprehend_v and_o whereas_o again_o he_o exclude_v here_o the_o essence_n of_o thing_n which_o i_o aver_v to_o be_v only_o another_o word_n for_o the_o nature_n of_o they_o from_o the_o compass_n of_o human_a knowledge_n do_v not_o this_o very_a man_n in_o this_o his_o defence_n p._n 7._o lin_v 11._o tell_v we_o that_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o spirit_n consist_v in_o internal_a vital_a sensation_n and_o now_o after_o that_o he_o have_v give_v we_o this_o account_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o spirit_n and_o tell_v we_o wherein_o it_o do_v consist_v will_v he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o look_v upon_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n as_o out_o of_o the_o compass_n of_o human_a knowledge_n i_o shall_v say_v no_o more_o of_o he_o at_o present_a but_o humble_o beg_v the_o reader_n serious_o to_o reflect_v upon_o the_o temper_n and_o confidence_n of_o this_o man_n and_o so_o i_o dismiss_v he_o for_o a_o everlasting_a shameless_a self-contradictor_a as_o he_o be_v and_o pass_v to_o the_o examination_n of_o what_o he_o bring_v against_o the_o animadverter_n 4._o four_o and_o last_o argument_n which_o proceed_v equal_o against_o mutual_a consciousness_n and_o self-consciousness_n too_o and_o be_v found_v upon_o that_o rule_n of_o philosophy_n that_o entity_n or_o being_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v multiply_v nor_o new_a notion_n to_o be_v admit_v where_o the_o old_a receive_v one_o be_v sufficient_a and_o that_o therefore_o the_o term_n and_o notion_n of_o mutual_a consciousness_n and_o self-consciousness_n in_o the_o present_a subject_a aught_o to_o be_v reject_v not_o only_o as_o new_a and_o suspicious_a but_o as_o whole_o needless_a and_o superfluous_a forasmuch_o as_o nothing_o can_v be_v signify_v by_o they_o which_o be_v not_o full_o and_o clear_o signify_v by_o that_o one_o plain_a word_n and_o know_a attribute_n the_o divine_a omniscience_n to_o which_o the_o defender_n reply_v in_o this_o fleer_a expostulation_n p._n 76._o lin_v 4._o pray_v what_o hurt_n have_v these_o seem_o innocent_a word_n do_v i_o answer_v too_o much_o a_o great_a deal_n if_o we_o may_v believe_v his_o own_o word_n to_o suffer_v they_o to_o pass_v for_o so_o much_o as_o seem_o innocent_a for_o p._n 8._o lin_v 19_o of_o this_o defence_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o these_o be_v the_o word_n which_o direct_o lead_v he_o to_o the_o assertion_n of_o three_o infinite_a mind_n which_o be_v direct_a tritheism_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o force_v he_o also_o to_o the_o trouble_n of_o a_o long_a senseless_a apology_n to_o persuade_v the_o world_n that_o by_o mind_n he_o do_v not_o mean_a mind_n as_o we_o shall_v more_o particular_o show_v in_o the_o discussion_n of_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o animadverter_n argument_n upon_o that_o subject_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o answer_v further_a that_o admit_v that_o all_o that_o be_v import_v by_o self-consciousness_n and_o mutual_a consciousness_n may_v be_v full_o signify_v by_o the_o divine_a omniscience_n yet_o why_o say_v he_o may_v not_o that_o one_o comprehensive_a attribute_n very_o proper_o receive_v different_a name_n according_a to_o its_o different_a object_n as_o the_o several_a art_n and_o science_n do_v to_o which_o i_o answer_v his_o ignorance_n that_o neither_o do_v several_a art_n nor_o science_n nor_o yet_o several_a kind_n of_o action_n receive_v their_o denomination_n from_o any_o of_o their_o particular_a object_n but_o only_o from_o their_o adequate_a and_o general_a object_n formal_o consider_v that_o be_v as_o apprehensible_a after_o such_o a_o certain_a way_n as_o for_o instance_n natural_a philosophy_n be_v so_o denominate_v not_o from_o this_o or_o that_o natural_a body_n but_o from_o natural_a body_n general_o and_o universal_o consider_v and_o that_o only_a in_o order_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o nature_n property_n and_o affection_n thereof_o and_o so_o likewise_o in_o natural_a act_n such_o as_o those_o of_o see_v and_o hear_v and_o the_o like_a every_o particular_a different_a
colour_n which_o be_v see_v do_v not_o give_v a_o diverse_a denomination_n to_o the_o act_n that_o perceive_v it_o since_o it_o affect_v it_o only_o after_o the_o same_o general_a way_n nor_o do_v every_o different_a sound_n or_o tune_v diverse_o denominate_v each_o particular_a act_n of_o hear_v which_o take_v they_o in_o but_o they_o have_v all_o one_o general_a denomination_n from_o one_o adequate_a object_n so_o consider_v as_o before_o express_v which_o to_o see_v be_v omn●_fw-la visibile_fw-la quatenus_fw-la visibile_fw-la and_o to_o hear_v omne_fw-la audibile_fw-la quatenus_fw-la audibile_fw-la and_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o adequate_a object_n of_o omniscience_n be_v omne_fw-la scibile_fw-la quatenus_fw-la scibile_fw-la and_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n as_o this_o omniscience_n terminate_v upon_o they_o be_v as_o proper_o and_o true_o three_o particular_a object_n of_o it_o as_o any_o three_o create_v finite_a being_n may_v be_v and_o it_o will_v make_v very_o odd_a work_n in_o good_a earnest_n to_o distinguish_v the_o divine_a omniscience_n by_o as_o many_o different_a name_n as_o it_o have_v particular_a different_a object_n which_o yet_o this_o man_n here_o most_o absurd_o contend_v for_o for_o according_a to_o this_o his_o assertion_n omniscience_n as_o it_o terminate_v upon_o a_o angel_n must_v have_v one_o name_n as_o upon_o a_o man_n another_o and_o as_o upon_o a_o beast_n or_o a_o fowl_n another_o and_o as_o god_n be_v say_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o omniscience_n to_o know_v and_o number_v the_o star_n and_o to_o call_v they_o all_o by_o their_o name_n psal._n 147.4_o his_o omniscience_n be_v terminate_v distinct_o upon_o every_o one_o of_o they_o must_v by_o consequence_n have_v as_o many_o different_a denomination_n as_o there_o be_v star_n in_o the_o firmament_n and_o therefore_o let_v this_o ignorant_a man_n know_v for_o the_o future_a that_o the_o divine_a knowledge_n be_v denominate_v only_o from_o its_o adequate_a object_n which_o comprehend_v all_o that_o be_v knowable_a and_o that_o only_a under_o this_o consideration_n as_o knowable_a and_o if_o he_o can_v prove_v self_n and_o other_o as_o he_o speak_v not_o to_o come_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o that_o object_n than_o we_o will_v allow_v that_o the_o knowledge_n distinct_o terminate_v upon_o self_n and_o other_o aught_o to_o receive_v from_o thence_o different_a denomination_n but_o till_o then_o he_o and_o his_o party_n may_v to_o my_o knowledge_n find_v much_o fit_a object_n to_o apply_v their_o self-consciousness_n and_o mutual_a consciousness_n to_o than_o the_o divine_a person_n but_o as_o if_o he_o have_v not_o sufficient_o disturb_v the_o church_n with_o his_o heretical_a novelty_n already_o he_o be_v now_o for_o start_v another_o as_o great_a as_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n for_o the_o world_n it_o seem_v have_v be_v hitherto_o under_o a_o mistake_n which_o he_o will_v now_o gracious_o correct_v by_o inform_v we_o that_o there_o be_v in_o almighty_a god_n a_o certain_a thing_n specifical_o different_a from_o his_o divine_a knowledge_n call_v intellectual_a sensation_n p._n 77._o lin_v 22._o and_o that_o he_o who_o do_v not_o know_v the_o difference_n between_o these_o be_v as_o unfit_a to_o meddle_v in_o this_o controversy_n as_o a_o blind_a man_n to_o dispute_v of_o colour_n and_o according_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o though_o self-consciousness_n and_o mutual_a consciousness_n may_v in_o some_o respect_n be_v call_v knowledge_n yet_o in_o truth_n they_o be_v of_o a_o quite_o different_a kind_n from_o it_o for_o that_o self-consciousness_n be_v that_o intellectual_a sensation_n by_o which_o each_o person_n feel_v his_o own_o thought_n knowledge_n volition_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o the_o mutual_a consciousness_n of_o the_o three_o person_n be_v not_o their_o knowledge_n of_o each_o other_o but_o their_o mutual_a sensation_n and_o feel_v each_o other_o in_o themselves_o so_o that_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d man_n have_v here_o give_v we_o a_o piece_n of_o new_a philosophy_n and_o divinity_n which_o the_o world_n know_v nothing_o of_o before_o but_o a_o notion_n so_o odd_a as_o well_o as_o new_a must_v not_o pass_v without_o examination_n and_o in_o order_n to_o that_o i_o shall_v advance_v this_o proposition_n in_o direct_a contradiction_n to_o the_o defender_n viz._n that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n as_o spiritual_a sensation_n distinct_a from_o spiritual_a knowledge_n or_o intellection_n and_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o contrary_a assertion_n i_o offer_v these_o follow_a consideration_n 1._o the_o universal_a authority_n of_o all_o philosopher_n and_o divine_n both_o schoolman_n and_o other_o who_o have_v treat_v scholastical_o of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o attribute_n unanimous_o acknowledge_v and_o assert_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o immanent_a act_n in_o god_n but_o act_n of_o intellection_n and_o volition_n which_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o conceive_n of_o god_n as_o of_o a_o intelligent_a be_v and_o consequent_o that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o act_n of_o sensation_n in_o god_n distinct_a from_o these_o 2._o that_o god_n be_v entire_o and_o adequate_o comprehensible_a by_o himself_o these_o two_o way_n 1._o by_o a_o representation_n of_o the_o entire_a idea_n of_o all_o his_o own_o divine_a perfection_n to_o himself_o which_o be_v do_v by_o intellection_n and_o 2._o by_o way_n of_o love_n of_o and_o complacency_n in_o these_o his_o infinite_a perfection_n thus_o represent_v to_o he_o which_o be_v do_v by_o volition_n and_o consequent_o there_o can_v be_v no_o such_o three_o way_n necessary_a to_o comprehend_v himself_o by_o as_o this_o author_n here_o call_v spiritual_a sensation_n 3._o that_o if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o act_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n as_o sensation_n distinct_a from_o intellection_n and_o volition_n than_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n also_o in_o the_o divine_a nature_n as_o a_o vis_fw-fr or_o potentia_fw-la sensitiva_fw-la different_a and_o distinct_a from_o the_o vis_fw-fr intellectiva_n and_o volitiva_n in_o the_o same_o for_o since_o in_o the_o case_n of_o mutual_a and_o self-consciousness_n this_o author_n have_v assert_v in_o the_o say_a nature_n a_o power_n or_o principle_n of_o consciousness_n distinct_a from_o the_o act_n thereof_o and_o have_v affirm_v likewise_o consciousness_n and_o self-sensation_a to_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n he_o must_v for_o the_o same_o reason_n necessary_o assign_v also_o a_o principle_n or_o power_n of_o sensation_n distinct_a from_o the_o act_n of_o sensation_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o certain_a new_a thing_n call_v a_o spiritual_a sensitive_a power_n in_o god_n which_o be_v neither_o intellective_a nor_o volitive_a and_o yet_o absolute_o necessary_a for_o the_o say_a act_n of_o spiritual_a sensation_n to_o issue_n from_o but_o now_o for_o any_o one_o to_o assert_v the_o addition_n of_o such_o a_o new_a power_n to_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v a_o thing_n in_o itself_o so_o uncouth_a and_o unphilosophical_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o world_n that_o there_o need_v not_o one_o word_n to_o be_v argue_v against_o it_o and_o as_o for_o this_o author_n i_o desire_v he_o to_o reconcile_v this_o new_a power_n in_o god_n with_o that_o zealous_a harangue_n p._n p._n 74_o 75._o make_v by_o he_o for_o the_o actuality_n and_o simplicity_n of_o the_o deity_n even_o to_o the_o explosion_n of_o all_o priority_n and_o posteriority_n of_o our_o conception_n about_o it_o but_o 4_o lie_v if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o sensation_n and_o a_o vis_fw-fr sensitiva_fw-la in_o god_n distinct_a from_o the_o vis_fw-fr intellectiva_n and_o volitiva_n let_v this_o man_n assign_v a_o solid_a reason_n if_o he_o can_v why_o there_o be_v not_o four_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n for_o since_o as_o the_o school_n affirm_v totus_fw-la deus_fw-la foecundus_fw-la est_fw-la there_o be_v no_o act_n in_o god_n but_o what_o be_v productive_a of_o some_o thing_n what_o shall_v hinder_v but_o that_o as_o the_o father_n communicate_v the_o divine_a essence_n per_fw-la intellectum_fw-la and_o so_o beget_v a_o son_n and_o both_o father_n and_o son_n communicate_v their_o divine_a essence_n per_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la and_o so_o breath_n forth_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o all_o three_o shall_v produce_v a_o four_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n by_o communicate_v their_o divine_a essence_n by_o this_o way_n of_o internal_a sensation_n i_o will_v not_o i_o declare_v presume_v to_o assert_v any_o thing_n in_o such_o a_o case_n but_o shall_v leave_v it_o to_o the_o learned_a and_o judicious_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o whole_a matter_n but_o i_o be_o sure_a it_o must_v pre●s_v hard_a upon_o this_o new_a invention_n and_o now_o after_o all_o that_o we_o have_v here_o argue_v upon_o this_o point_n i_o demand_v of_o this_o man_n upon_o what_o ground_n he_o assert_n in_o god_n such_o a_o thing_n as_o spiritual_a sensation_n
distinct_a in_o kind_n from_o divine_a knowledge_n for_o it_o be_v his_o way_n to_o advance_v the_o most_o heterodox_n proposition_n without_o the_o least_o offer_n of_o a_o proof_n of_o they_o why_o i_o defy_v all_o mankind_n to_o find_v out_o any_o other_o ground_n of_o this_o assertion_n beside_o the_o thing_n itself_o assert_v by_o he_o viz._n that_o each_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n intimate_o feel_v himself_o to_o be_v what_o he_o be_v and_o not_o another_o and_o that_o feel_n and_o know_v be_v quite_o different_a thing_n this_o be_v all_o that_o he_o say_v or_o pretend_v to_o say_v in_o answer_n to_o which_o i_o demand_v of_o he_o whether_o he_o derive_v the_o necessity_n of_o this_o expression_n of_o feel_v as_o contra-distinct_a in_o god_n to_o know_v this_o be_v the_o sole_a ground_n of_o his_o assertion_n from_o scripture_n or_o reason_n or_o the_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n itself_o require_v it_o if_o from_o scripture_n let_v it_o be_v produce_v and_o we_o submit_v if_o from_o reason_n let_v some_o argument_n from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v produce_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v some_o apprehensive_a act_n in_o god_n of_o a_o quite_o different_a kind_n from_o knowledge_n but_o no_o such_o argument_n ever_o yet_o appear_v and_o much_o less_o in_o the_o three_o and_o last_o place_n can_v the_o genuine_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n feeling_n infer_v this_o for_o do_v the_o word_n feeling_n in_o the_o proper_a use_n of_o it_o signify_v any_o thing_n spiritual_a or_o can_v it_o be_v proper_o apply_v to_o god_n if_o it_o do_v not_o no_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o proper_o signify_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a only_o a_o corporeal_a act_n require_v a_o corporeal_a subject_n to_o lodge_v it_o in_o so_o that_o as_o have_v be_v observe_v before_o spiritual_a feeling_n be_v a_o arrant_a contradiction_n in_o adjecto_fw-la and_o therefore_o the_o truth_n be_v feel_v can_v be_v no_o otherwise_o apply_v to_o spiritual_a being_n and_o especial_o to_o god_n himself_o than_o by_o a_o trope_n and_o metaphor_n and_o as_o see_v hear_v and_o smell_v be_v apply_v to_o he_o and_o we_o may_v as_o well_o ascribe_v to_o god_n a_o self-conscious_a see_v a_o self-conscious_a hear_n and_o a_o self-conscious_a smell_a and_o all_o distinct_a from_o his_o knowledge_n as_o a_o self-conscious_a feel_n god_n in_o scripture_n be_v say_v to_o see_v and_o to_o hear_v to_o express_v to_o we_o the_o clearness_n and_o quickness_n of_o his_o knowledge_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n may_v be_v say_v to_o feel_v to_o express_v the_o intimacy_n of_o his_o knowledge_n to_o the_o object_n know_v there_o be_v no_o act_n of_o sense_n in_o which_o there_o be_v so_o near_o a_o application_n of_o the_o object_n to_o the_o faculty_n as_o in_o feeling_n so_o that_o this_o whole_a new_a assertion_n be_v found_v upon_o nothing_o but_o mere_a trope_n and_o metaphor_n translate_n term_n from_o their_o proper_a sensible_a signification_n to_o a_o figurative_a and_o spiritual_a which_o nothing_o but_o a_o absolute_a necessity_n from_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o thing_n can_v ever_o justify_v and_o now_o i_o desire_v all_o professor_n of_o divinity_n to_o consider_v the_o confidence_n of_o this_o man_n and_o whither_o it_o may_v tend_v who_o by_o draw_v word_n from_o their_o proper_a signification_n to_o a_o tropical_a and_o this_o of_o his_o own_o head_n shall_v presume_v to_o found_v a_o new_a notion_n about_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o act_n for_o let_v he_o prove_v any_o other_o ground_n for_o this_o notion_n of_o spiritual_a sensation_n or_o feeling_n distinct_a from_o knowledge_n in_o god_n if_o he_o can_v and_o therefore_o since_o this_o be_v whole_o a_o new_a invention_n of_o his_o own_o and_o not_o hitherto_o prove_v by_o any_o argument_n but_o his_o own_o bare_a word_n affirm_v it_o i_o do_v here_o require_v he_o to_o produce_v his_o argument_n for_o it_o for_o it_o be_v a_o proposition_n whole_o new_a it_o be_v incumbent_n upon_o the_o proposer_n of_o it_o first_o to_o prove_v it_o and_o not_o upon_o his_o adversary_n maintain_v the_o contrary_a thesis_n in_o actual_a and_o long_a possession_n to_o disprove_v it_o but_o only_o to_o expect_v and_o answer_v his_o argument_n as_o they_o shall_v be_v offer_v i_o have_v i_o confess_v produce_v some_o reason_n against_o it_o already_o but_o it_o be_v more_o than_o what_o the_o rule_n of_o disputation_n oblige_v i_o to_o and_o therefore_o i_o do_v here_o again_o call_v upon_o this_o man_n to_o produce_v his_o argument_n for_o his_o new_a assertion_n declare_v withal_o that_o i_o here_o undertake_v to_o maintain_v this_o thesis_n against_o he_o viz._n that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o spiritual_a sensation_n in_o god_n distinct_a from_o his_o knowledge_n this_o i_o say_v i_o declare_v myself_o ready_a to_o defend_v against_o he_o as_o public_o as_o he_o have_v assert_v the_o contrary_a affirmative_a and_o according_o in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o world_n i_o challenge_v he_o to_o the_o dispute_n and_o do_v otherwise_o declare_v he_o a_o disturber_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o perverter_n of_o our_o religion_n by_o paradox_n which_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o speak_v one_o word_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o in_o the_o next_o place_n we_o have_v he_o make_v his_o last_o effort_n to_o keep_v up_o his_o sink_a cause_n and_o credit_n with_o a_o downright_a falsification_n and_o a_o utter_a change_n of_o the_o whole_a question_n hitherto_o in_o dispute_n between_o he_o and_o his_o adversary_n and_o that_o in_o these_o follow_a word_n p._n 78._o lin_v 9_o that_o he_o hope_n that_o if_o the_o animadverter_n will_v try_v his_o skill_n again_o he_o shall_v hear_v no_o more_o of_o his_o formal_a reason_n of_o personality_n and_o union_n but_o that_o he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o speak_v to_o the_o true_a point_n viz._n whether_o a_o self-conscious_a person_n be_v not_o one_o with_o himself_o etc._n and_o distinguish_v from_o all_o other_o person_n and_o whether_o he_o do_v not_o feel_v himself_o to_o be_v thus_o one_o and_o thus_o distinguish_v by_o self-consciousness_n and_o whether_o three_o divine_a person_n who_o be_v thus_o mutual_o conscious_a to_o each_o other_o be_v not_o natural_o and_o essential_o unite_v into_o one_o god_n and_o all_o other_o dispute_n be_v certain_o beside_o the_o question_n and_o if_o so_o than_o i_o be_o sure_a his_o whole_a vindication_n and_o a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o very_a defense_n of_o it_o be_v so_o too_o but_o have_v this_o man_n confidence_n so_o total_o swallow_v up_o his_o conscience_n that_o he_o dare_v offer_v so_o notorious_a a_o falsehood_n to_o the_o world_n in_o print_n i_o do_v here_o solemn_o aver_v that_o what_o he_o have_v now_o set_v down_o as_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n between_o he_o and_o the_o animadverter_n be_v as_o far_o from_o it_o as_o the_o bare_a consequent_a of_o any_o thing_n be_v or_o can_v be_v from_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o and_o that_o this_o may_v be_v make_v as_o clear_v to_o the_o reader_n as_o the_o day_n he_o be_v desire_v to_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o animadverter_n write_v against_o this_o man_n new_a hypothesis_n about_o the_o trinity_n as_o he_o find_v it_o deliver_v in_o his_o book_n entitle_v a_o vindication_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n etc._n etc._n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n must_v be_v draw_v from_o thence_o and_o this_o have_v be_v full_o and_o fair_o do_v already_o in_o those_o several_a proposition_n quote_v and_o set_v down_o by_o i_o in_o my_o entrance_n upon_o the_o examination_n of_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o animadverter_n argument_n where_o the_o reader_n will_v find_v the_o true_a and_o whole_a state_n of_o the_o question_n lay_v before_o he_o in_o this_o man_n be_v own_o word_n which_o though_o it_o be_v abundant_o enough_o to_o show_v his_o insufferable_a falsification_n yet_o to_o show_v it_o more_o full_o still_o if_o possible_a and_o to_o save_v the_o reader_n the_o trouble_n of_o cast_v his_o eye_n backward_o and_o forward_o i_o will_v here_o set_v down_o both_o what_o he_o say_v in_o this_o his_o defense_n and_o what_o he_o first_o assert_v in_o his_o vindication_n together_o that_o so_o by_o compare_v what_o he_o retract_v or_o rather_o falsify_v here_o with_o what_o he_o have_v so_o positive_o affirm_v there_o the_o reader_n may_v impartial_o judge_v whether_o such_o a_o one_o upon_o such_o a_o subject_a can_v be_v fit_a either_o to_o dispute_v or_o to_o be_v dispute_v with_o and_o this_o shall_v be_v do_v in_o the_o follow_a particular_n as_o first_o this_o author_n in_o his_o defense_n declare_v that_o the_o question_n be_v only_o this_o whether_o three_o self-consciousnesses_a do_v not_o prove_v three_o self-conscious_a
all_o along_o plead_v for_o but_o after_o the_o fore-alleged_n testimony_n of_o the_o father_n the_o animadverter_n think_v fit_a to_o add_v the_o modern_a testimony_n of_o bellarmine_n in_o those_o word_n that_o to_o assert_v that_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n differ_v in_o substance_n be_v arianism_n in_o reply_n to_o which_o he_o first_o scoff_o except_v against_o bellarmine_n orthodoxy_n because_o forsooth_o he_o be_v a_o papist_n like_a that_o profound_a dotard_n who_o reprove_v a_o young_a student_n for_o read_v clavius_n upon_o euclid_n tell_v he_o that_o he_o ought_v to_o read_v none_o but_o protestant_a mathematics_n for_o sure_o the_o romish_a writer_n be_v as_o orthodox_n about_o the_o article_n of_o the_o trinity_n as_o any_o protestant_a writer_n whatsoever_o according_o from_o these_o word_n of_o bellarmine_n the_o animadverter_n argue_v that_o if_o in_o the_o trinity_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v two_o distinct_a substance_n for_o they_o not_o to_o differ_v in_o substance_n will_v be_v impossible_a to_o which_o this_o man_n reply_v in_o these_o word_n as_o if_o say_v he_o to_o be_v distinct_a and_o to_o differ_v in_o substance_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n no_o trifler_n no_o for_o accident_n may_v be_v distinct_a and_o modes_n may_v be_v distinct_a which_o can_v differ_v in_o substance_n and_o the_o animadverter_n speak_v not_o here_o of_o any_o sort_n of_o distinction_n in_o general_n but_o only_o of_o the_o distinction_n of_o substance_n and_o as_o to_o that_o he_o affirm_v that_o for_o substance_n to_o be_v distinct_a must_v infer_v they_o to_o differ_v in_o substance_n too_o but_o he_o ask_v we_o hereupon_o a_o very_a wise_a question_n be_v not_o two_o man_n say_v he_o unius_fw-la substantiae_fw-la of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substance_n because_o they_o be_v two_o distinct_a man_n and_o each_o of_o they_o have_v a_o distinct_a nature_n of_o his_o own_o p._n 90._o l._n 19_o i_o answer_v that_o a_o distinct_a human_a nature_n be_v a_o distinct_a substance_n and_o that_o although_o '_o two_o man_n be_v notional_o and_o specifical_o of_o the_o same_o substance_n or_o nature_n yet_o real_o and_o numerical_o they_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v so_o but_o he_o have_v not_o do_v with_o his_o question_n yet_o but_o ask_v we_o whether_o to_o differ_v in_o number_n and_o to_o differ_v in_o substance_n and_o nature_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o whether_o difference_n in_o number_n prove_v a_o diversity_n of_o nature_n too_o yes_o sir_n a_o numerical_a diversity_n of_o individual_a nature_n or_o substance_n it_o do_v prove_v though_o their_o specific_a nature_n which_o be_v but_o a_o notion_n found_v upon_o thing_n be_v the_o same_o and_o here_o i_o must_v tell_v his_o ignorance_n what_o it_o be_v that_o betray_v he_o to_o these_o silly_a question_n viz._n his_o suppose_n that_o there_o be_v no_o essential_a difference_n or_o no_o diversity_n of_o nature_n but_o a_o specific_a difference_n or_o diversity_n whereas_o a_o essential_a difference_n as_o well_o as_o a_o essential_a unity_n be_v threefold_a viz._n a_o generical_a a_o specifical_a and_o a_o numerical_a and_o this_o last_o be_v as_o much_o and_o as_o true_o a_o essential_a difference_n as_o any_o of_o the_o two_o former_a or_o rather_o more_o so_o for_o the_o two_o former_a be_v proper_o notion_n exist_v only_o in_o the_o mind_n though_o collect_v from_o thing_n actual_o exist_v in_o nature_n but_o the_o last_o have_v no_o dependence_n upon_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o mind_n at_o all_o but_o be_v whole_o in_o the_o thing_n itself_o whereof_o it_o be_v the_o difference_n and_o therefore_o i_o do_v here_o tell_v this_o man_n that_o three_o numerical_o distinct_a substance_n be_v three_o numerical_o distinct_a essence_n or_o nature_n and_o consequent_o differ_v from_o one_o another_o as_o three_o such_o essence_n or_o nature_n do_v as_o for_o the_o compliment_n he_o pass_v upon_o the_o animadverter_n at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o paragraph_n p._n 90._o as_o if_o he_o be_v to_o be_v teach_v by_o this_o man_n to_o construe_v the_o father_n for_o that_o and_o sundry_a other_o of_o his_o scurrility_n i_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o reckon_v with_o he_o in_o due_a place_n but_o after_o the_o several_a testimony_n produce_v by_o the_o animadverter_n against_o a_o plurality_n of_o substance_n in_o the_o godhead_n he_o proceed_v to_o argue_v against_o the_o same_o from_o reason_n and_o what_o do_v the_o defender_n reply_n upon_o this_o topick_n why_o say_v he_o whereas_o the_o animadverter_n will_v prove_v that_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n can_v be_v three_o distinct_a mind_n because_o they_o be_v not_o three_o distinct_a substance_n the_o dean_n may_v safe_o deny_v the_o consequence_n p._n 90._o at_o the_o latter_a end_n and_o may_v he_o so_o i_o must_v tell_v he_o that_o if_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o genus_fw-la do_v and_o must_v infer_v a_o denial_n of_o the_o species_n as_o that_o which_o be_v not_o a_o animal_n can_v possible_o be_v a_o man_n then_o that_o which_o prove_v the_o three_o person_n not_o to_o be_v three_o substance_n must_v prove_v they_o also_o not_o to_o be_v three_o mind_n for_o substance_n respect_n mind_n as_o a_o genus_fw-la do_v its_o species_n and_o the_o consequence_n from_o the_o genus_fw-la to_o the_o species_n negative_o be_v unavoidable_a but_o what_o then_o will_v he_o have_v the_o animadverter_n to_o prove_v why_o this_o that_o if_o three_o mind_n be_v three_o intelligent_a person_n and_o a_o mind_n be_v a_o substance_n therefore_o three_o distinct_a mind_n or_o person_n be_v three_o distinct_a substance_n p._n 91._o l._n 1._o but_o what_o illogical_a confuse_a stuff_n be_v this_o however_o since_o it_o afford_v three_o term_n i_o will_v cast_v it_o for_o he_o into_o a_o syllogistical_a form_n and_o that_o will_v quick_o show_v what_o may_v be_v conclude_v in_o this_o matter_n and_o what_o can_v thus._n three_o distinct_a mind_n be_v three_o distinct_a substance_n but_o three_o distinct_a person_n be_v three_o distinct_a mind_n therefore_o three_o distinct_a person_n be_v three_o distinct_a substance_n the_o major_n of_o which_o syllogism_n have_v be_v effectual_o prove_v from_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o mind_n already_o and_o the_o minor_a be_v the_o defender_n avow_a principle_n and_o assertion_n can_v any_o thing_n conclude_v more_o plain_o than_o this_o syllogism_n do_v that_o according_a to_o this_o man_n principle_n the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v three_o distinct_a substance_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o the_o defender_n here_o call_v upon_o the_o animadverter_n to_o prove_v and_o according_o prove_v it_o be_v but_o say_v he_o three_o distinct_a mind_n may_v subsist_v distinct_o and_o inseparable_o in_o one_o eternal_a and_o infinite_a substance_n as_o three_o intelligent_a person_n do_v ibid._n to_o which_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o let_v they_o exist_v never_o so_o inseparable_o in_o one_o infinite_a substance_n they_o be_v real_o three_o mind_n still_o and_o can_v never_o be_v one_o individual_a substance_n or_o mind_n but_o collective_o and_o that_o i_o be_o sure_a be_v neither_o natural_o proper_o or_o simple_o one_o second_o that_o three_o mind_n may_v as_o well_o be_v in_o one_o infinite_a substance_n as_o three_o person_n be_v this_o be_v perfect_o gratìs_fw-la dictum_fw-la and_o according_a to_o his_o usual_a way_n a_o gross_a downright_a presume_v the_o thing_n in_o dispute_n for_o it_o be_v and_o have_v be_v all_o along_o absolute_o deny_v he_o and_o the_o contrary_a more_o than_o once_o prove_v against_o he_o viz._n that_o three_o distinct_a mind_n be_v three_o absolute_a entire_a being_n essence_n or_o substance_n can_v never_o subsist_v in_o one_o absolute_a be_v essence_n or_o substance_n and_o that_o on_o the_o other_o side_n three_o intelligent_a divine_a person_n be_v relative_n subsistence_n not_o absolute_a being_n may_v subsist_v in_o one_o absolute_a be_v or_o substance_n so_o that_o the_o disparity_n between_o mind_n and_o person_n be_v manifest_a and_o as_o to_o the_o present_a case_n irreconcilable_a nay_o and_o i_o shall_v add_v one_o consideration_n more_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n and_o that_o of_o no_o small_a moment_n viz._n that_o no_o two_o or_o more_o substance_n nor_o consequent_o mind_n or_o spirit_n do_v or_o can_v subsist_v inseparable_o which_o yet_o this_o man_n take_v for_o grant_v but_o that_o as_o they_o be_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n capable_a of_o exist_v by_o themselves_o and_o for_o that_o reason_n separable_a so_o by_o the_o absolute_a power_n of_o god_n they_o may_v be_v actual_o separate_v provide_v his_o decree_n do_v not_o hinder_v and_o this_o make_v another_o vast_a disparity_n between_o mind_n spirit_n and_o substance_n on_o the_o one_o hand_n and_o the_o divine_a person_n on_o the_o other_o viz._n that_o the_o divine_a person_n from_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v even_o by_o the_o divine_a
can_v be_v one_o person_n for_o in_o either_o of_o these_o instance_n the_o unity_n and_o diversity_n be_v in_o eodem_fw-la genere_fw-la viz._n in_o genere_fw-la mentis_fw-la in_o the_o former_a in_o genere_fw-la personae_fw-la in_o the_o latter_a and_o consequent_o in_o both_o impossible_a and_o therefore_o as_o for_o that_o inference_n upon_o which_o his_o whole_a answer_n rely_v viz._n that_o if_o it_o be_v no_o contradiction_n for_o three_o to_o be_v one_o in_o several_a respect_n than_o it_o be_v no_o contradiction_n for_o three_o infinite_a mind_n to_o be_v one_o mind_n p._n 93._o l._n 18._o i_o must_v tell_v this_o anti-logician_n that_o he_o conclude_v from_o a_o particular_a proposition_n instead_o of_o a_o universal_a and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o from_o a_o particular_a instance_n of_o one_o kind_n to_o a_o particular_a instance_n of_o another_o his_o argument_n amount_v to_o no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o because_o it_o be_v no_o contradiction_n for_o three_o to_o be_v one_o upon_o different_a account_n in_o some_o case_n therefore_o neither_o be_v it_o so_o in_o the_o case_n of_o three_o mind_n but_o this_o by_o his_o favour_n will_v never_o follow_v for_o though_o it_o be_v no_o contradiction_n in_o some_o instance_n as_o particular_o in_o that_o of_o three_o subsistence_n in_o one_o essence_n or_o of_o three_o relation_n or_o respect_n so_o concur_v in_o any_o one_o thing_n as_o to_o be_v all_o predicable_a of_o it_o yet_o this_o do_v not_o hold_v in_o all_o instance_n nor_o in_o any_o indifferent_o nor_o particular_o in_o this_o of_o three_o mind_n for_o as_o much_o as_o no_o respect_n whatsoever_o can_v make_v three_o mind_n to_o be_v essential_o one_o mind_n nor_o three_o spirit_n to_o be_v one_o spirit_n nor_o three_o substance_n one_o substance_n and_o the_o like_a and_o it_o will_v be_v a_o contradiction_n for_o they_o so_o to_o be_v but_o according_a to_o this_o author_n hypothesis_n we_o have_v here_o a_o trinity_n and_o unity_n of_o nature_n that_o be_v to_o say_v three_o distinct_a nature_n one_o in_o nature_n three_o distinct_a substance_n one_o in_o substance_n and_o three_o distinct_a spirit_n one_o spirit_n and_o all_o this_o only_a by_o virtue_n of_o several_a respect_n whereas_o no_o bare_a diversity_n either_o of_o respect_n or_o action_n can_v give_v or_o cause_v a_o diversity_n of_o nature_n or_o essence_n in_o the_o substance_n they_o belong_v to_o and_o issue_n from_o howsoever_o in_o some_o instance_n it_o may_v prove_v or_o infer_v the_o same_o and_o therefore_o since_o it_o have_v be_v abundant_o prove_v that_o the_o term_n god_n and_o infinite_a mind_n be_v so_o perfect_o equipollent_a that_o whatsoever_o may_v be_v affirm_v or_o deny_v of_o the_o one_o must_v be_v equal_o affirm_v or_o deny_v of_o the_o other_o i_o challenge_v this_o author_n to_o give_v the_o world_n a_o solid_a reason_n why_o in_o different_a respect_n three_o god_n may_v not_o be_v one_o god_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o say_a respect_n three_o infinite_a mind_n may_v be_v one_o infinite_a mind_n and_o particular_o why_o mutual_a consciousness_n may_v not_o unite_v several_a god_n into_o one_o as_o well_o as_o several_a infinite_a mind_n into_o one_o be_v there_o several_a god_n to_o be_v so_o unite_v and_o i_o will_v undertake_v to_o prove_v and_o have_v indeed_o more_o than_o sufficient_o prove_v already_o that_o there_o be_v and_o must_v be_v as_o many_o god_n as_o there_o be_v infinite_a mind_n but_o as_o for_o his_o old_a outwear_v implement_n mutual_a consciousness_n which_o be_v the_o only_a vinculum_fw-la he_o assign_v to_o make_v his_o three_o infinite_a mind_n essential_o one_o it_o have_v be_v show_v that_o suppose_v it_o as_o this_o author_n do_v to_o proceed_v from_o three_o distinct_a mind_n it_o can_v be_v one_o act_n but_o three_o distinct_a act_n which_o therefore_o can_v never_o make_v three_o essence_n as_o the_o three_o mind_n be_v from_o which_o the_o say_a act_n must_v proceed_v to_o be_v essential_o one_o beside_o that_o if_o this_o mutual_a consciousness_n be_v but_o one_o single_a act_n yet_o be_v as_o such_o postnate_a to_o the_o essence_n from_o which_o it_o flow_v it_o can_v never_o give_v original_a unity_n to_o it_o i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n can_v in_o no_o respect_n whatsoever_o be_v three_o infinite_a mind_n any_o more_o than_o three_o go_n for_o this_o very_a man_n affirm_v in_o terminis_fw-la that_o infinite_a mind_n or_o spirit_n be_v the_o divine_a nature_n or_o essence_n itself_o and_o that_o even_o in_o contradistinction_n to_o any_o of_o the_o divine_a attribute_n p._n 94._o l._n 23._o and_o if_o so_o then_o three_o infinite_a mind_n be_v three_o divine_a nature_n or_o essence_n and_o three_o divine_a nature_n be_v three_o godhead_n and_o three_o godhead_n be_v three_o god_n only_o under_o a_o different_a way_n of_o expression_n all_o which_o be_v so_o very_a plain_n yea_o so_o flagrant_o so_o self-evident_o plain_a that_o to_o dispute_v any_o long_o with_o he_o upon_o this_o subject_n will_v be_v but_o like_o dispute_v with_o one_o who_o deny_v that_o the_o snow_n be_v white_a or_o that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o motion_n even_o while_o he_o himself_o be_v walk_v about_o the_o room_n and_o thus_o have_v shake_v in_o piece_n his_o crazy_a impertinent_a answer_n to_o the_o animadverter_n three_o argument_n when_o i_o look_v back_o upon_o that_o shrewd_a remark_n of_o he_o with_o which_o he_o begin_v the_o say_a answer_n viz._n that_o logic_n be_v a_o very_a troublesome_a thing_n when_o man_n want_v sense_n p._n 93._o l._n 7._o i_o must_v confess_v that_o he_o here_o speak_v like_o a_o man_n who_o understand_v himself_o and_o that_o have_v so_o often_o show_v how_o troublesome_a a_o thing_n logic_n be_v to_o he_o by_o his_o be_v so_o angry_a with_o it_o he_o now_o give_v we_o a_o very_a satisfactory_a reason_n why_o it_o be_v so_o and_o therefore_o in_o requital_n of_o it_o i_o can_v but_o tell_v he_o that_o if_o logic_n without_o sense_n be_v so_o troublesome_a confidence_n without_o either_o logic_n or_o sense_n or_o truth_n or_o shame_n or_o so_o much_o as_o conscience_n of_o what_o one_o say_v or_o deny_v be_v intolerable_a and_o so_o i_o be_o at_o length_n come_v to_o the_o 4._o four_o and_o conclude_a argument_n which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o form_n of_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n and_o run_v thus_o whatsoever_o attribute_n may_v be_v true_o predicate_v of_o all_o and_o each_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n in_o the_o athanasian_n form_n so_o belong_v to_o they_o all_o in_o common_a that_o it_o can_v belong_v to_o none_o of_o they_o under_o any_o term_n of_o distinction_n from_o the_o rest_n but_o the_o attribute_n infinite_a mind_n or_o spirit_n may_v be_v true_o predicate_v of_o all_o and_o each_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n in_o and_o according_a to_o the_o athanasian_n form_n and_o therefore_o it_o can_v belong_v to_o none_o of_o they_o under_o any_o term_n of_o distinction_n from_o the_o rest_n and_o what_o have_v our_o defender_n now_o to_o oppose_v to_o this_o argument_n why_o first_o according_a to_o his_o usual_a way_n of_o give_v a_o dull_a scoff_n instead_o of_o a_o rational_a answer_n he_o call_v it_o a_o wonderful_a argument_n and_o i_o confess_v it_o may_v well_o be_v so_o to_o he_o since_o wonder_n general_o spring_v from_o ignorance_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o the_o oracle_n say_v and_o here_o we_o have_v he_o tell_v we_o that_o infinite_a mind_n or_o spirit_n be_v no_o attribute_n but_o the_o divine_a nature_n or_o essence_n itself_o and_o that_o the_o metaphysical_a animadverter_n use_v to_o distinguish_v between_o essence_n and_o attribute_n in_o god_n def._n p._n 94._o l._n 23._o in_o answer_n to_o which_o the_o metaphysical_a animadverter_n will_v have_v the_o illogical_a defender_n know_v that_o what_o metaphysical_o take_v be_v proper_o the_o subject_a of_o the_o divine_a attribute_n and_o upon_o that_o account_n stand_v distinguish_v from_o they_o as_o the_o divine_a essence_n or_o nature_n so_o take_v do_v may_v yet_o logical_o consider_v be_v itself_o a_o attribute_n as_o it_o obtain_v the_o place_n of_o a_o predicate_v join_v with_o a_o subject_a in_o a_o proposition_n and_o therefore_o to_o that_o senseless_a question_n of_o he_o be_v god_n a_o attribute_n i_o answer_v that_o in_o a_o logical_a sense_n god_n may_v be_v so_o for_o as_o much_o as_o god_n may_v be_v true_o and_o proper_o predicate_v of_o each_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n and_o i_o will_v have_v this_o poor_a capechumen_n in_o logic_n take_v notice_n that_o whatsoever_o stand_v predicate_v in_o any_o proposition_n so_o as_o to_o be_v affirm_v of_o another_o thing_n as_o of_o a_o subject_a that_o be_v logical_o a_o attribute_n and_o therefore_o though_o the_o term_n god_n metaphysical_o take_v as_o we_o
〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d man_n in_o the_o several_a age_n they_o live_v in_o nor_o be_v there_o any_o who_o the_o primitive_a church_n still_o keep_v so_o watchful_a a_o eye_n and_o so_o severe_a a_o hand_n over_o as_o these_o novellist_n and_o have_v this_o author_n live_v not_o only_o under_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n of_o those_o age_n but_o even_o of_o that_o excellent_a copy_n of_o it_o the_o church_n among_o ourselves_o before_o the_o great_a rebellion_n which_o give_v it_o such_o a_o incurable_a wound_n he_o will_v have_v find_v to_o his_o cost_n what_o it_o have_v be_v to_o play_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d man_n upon_o the_o trinity_n for_o whatsoever_o else_o it_o may_v have_v do_v for_o he_o it_o will_v have_v be_v sure_a to_o have_v stop_v he_o in_o his_o way_n to_o st._n paul_n but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o his_o civility_n to_o the_o animadverter_n for_o he_o allow_v he_o not_o only_o able_a to_o transcribe_v but_o to_o make_v a_o shift_n to_o read_v too_o for_o this_o author_n have_v convince_v i_o that_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a for_o one_o to_o transcribe_v what_o he_o can_v read_v in_o requital_n of_o which_o compliment_n i_o do_v here_o tell_v this_o man_n that_o if_o he_o can_v and_o shall_v pay_v to_o the_o crown_n a_o penny_n for_o every_o greek_a word_n which_o he_o can_v neither_o read_v nor_o spell_n nor_o make_v any_o thing_n of_o i_o dare_v undertake_v that_o it_o may_v save_v the_o nation_n a_o tax_n for_o one_o year_n at_o least_o in_o fine_a as_o much_o a_o transcriber_n as_o his_o foul_a mouth_n will_v make_v the_o animadverter_n let_v he_o but_o prove_v that_o he_o ever_o transcribe_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o his_o write_n and_o i_o will_v give_v he_o leave_v to_o prosecute_v he_o not_o only_o for_o a_o thief_n but_o for_o the_o very_o worst_a the_o base_a and_o mean_a of_o thief_n viz._n a_o robber_n of_o the_o hospital_n but_o i_o assure_v he_o that_o for_o what_o concern_v his_o own_o write_n he_o be_v safe_a for_o as_o to_o they_o let_v any_o man_n but_o first_o read_v and_o i_o dare_v undertake_v he_o will_v never_o be_v tempt_v to_o transcribe_v second_o the_o next_o passage_n i_o shall_v take_v notice_n of_o be_v that_o in_o p._n 38._o at_o the_o end_n and_o 39_o at_o the_o beginning_n where_o with_o the_o gross_a ignorance_n pretend_v to_o prove_v risibility_n the_o formal_a reason_n of_o humanity_n from_o a_o assertion_n of_o the_o animadverter_n which_o he_o understand_v not_o this_o say_v he_o make_v well_o for_o the_o animadverter_n to_o prove_v he_o to_o be_v a_o man_n though_o he_o be_v seldom_o in_o so_o good_a a_o humour_n as_o to_o laugh_v without_o grin_v which_o belong_v to_o another_o species_n thus_o the_o courtier_n of_o gravel-lane_n by_o which_o word_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o poor_a man_n be_v here_o offer_v at_o wit_n but_o can_v reach_v it_o but_o as_o for_o the_o risibility_n he_o be_v so_o much_o concern_v against_o do_v not_o all_o the_o school_n of_o philosophy_n make_v risibility_n the_o property_n of_o a_o man_n and_o withal_o deny_v the_o form_n or_o nature_n of_o any_o thing_n to_o consist_v in_o the_o property_n of_o it_o as_o well_o as_o the_o animadverter_n but_o let_v he_o set_v his_o heart_n at_o rest_n for_o whatsoever_o risibility_n may_v be_v in_o other_o yet_o so_o far_o as_o it_o concern_v himself_o the_o animadverter_n will_v hardly_o allow_v it_o for_o a_o argument_n of_o rationality_n as_o it_o be_v in_o he_o but_o as_o it_o be_v employ_v upon_o he_o but_o to_o cut_v off_o the_o unfortunate_a animadverter_n from_o all_o hope_n of_o ever_o prove_v his_o rationality_n by_o his_o risibility_n with_o one_o terrible_a blow_n he_o strike_v he_o down_o into_o the_o grin_a species_n the_o meaning_n of_o which_o word_n be_v very_o well_o know_v and_o a_o word_n it_o be_v as_o fit_v for_o this_o man_n be_v billingsgate_n mouth_n as_o his_o mouth_n be_v peculiar_o fit_v for_o that_o though_o by_o his_o favour_n he_o shall_v never_o make_v the_o animadverter_n so_o far_o of_o the_o grin_a species_n as_o either_o to_o find_v he_o among_o the_o sneak_a spaniel_n or_o the_o hybrid_n mongril_n but_o rather_o of_o that_o genuine_a english_a kind_n which_o have_v once_o fasten_v as_o the_o animadverter_n have_v upon_o this_o man_n will_v not_o be_v make_v to_o quit_v their_o hold._n but_o if_o he_o be_v desirous_a to_o learn_v that_o canine_a art_n of_o fetch_v and_o carry_v especial_o between_o paul_n and_o lambeth_n he_o know_v where_o to_o find_v one_o very_o well_o able_a to_o instruct_v he_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o humble_o present_v the_o world_n with_o this_o specimen_fw-la of_o mr._n dean_n refine_a breed_n civility_n and_o discretion_n that_o he_o have_v no_o other_o answer_n to_o give_v his_o adversary_n but_o by_o call_v he_o grin_v dog_n which_o yet_o i_o confess_v be_v very_o agreeable_a to_o the_o rage_n i_o hear_v the_o animadversion_n have_v put_v he_o into_o which_o be_v such_o that_o in_o most_o company_n he_o speak_v of_o nothing_o but_o dagger_n gibbet_n and_o furnace_n the_o very_a mention_n either_o of_o the_o animadverter_n or_o animadversion_n transport_v he_o into_o such_o fit_n and_o agony_n as_o render_v he_o extreme_o troublesome_a both_o to_o himself_o and_o to_o all_o who_o be_v so_o unhappy_a as_o to_o be_v with_o he_o and_o much_o ado_n have_v he_o in_o one_o of_o those_o fit_n to_o forbear_v curse_v both_o of_o they_o by_o his_o go_n but_o three_o i_o pass_v on_o to_o present_v the_o reader_n with_o another_o of_o his_o flower_n gather_v out_o of_o p._n 90._o l._n 25._o of_o this_o defence_n where_o he_o close_v a_o paragraph_n with_o these_o magisterial_a word_n pronounce_v one_o will_v think_v out_o of_o the_o chair_n of_o aristarchus_n himself_o or_o some_o such_o eminent_a grammarian_n it_o be_v say_v he_o a_o tedious_a thing_n to_o dispute_v with_o man_n who_o must_v be_v teach_v to_o construe_v the_o father_n and_o understand_v common_a sense_n but_o will_v this_o abcedarian_a venture_n to_o reproach_v any_o one_o for_o that_o who_o but_o a_o few_o page_n before_o this_o construe_v that_o expression_n of_o the_o father_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o mutual_a consciousness_n p._n 71._o l._n 6_o and_o that_o in_o those_o remarkable_o positive_a word_n this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v he_o be_v that_o very_a mutual_a consciousness_n which_o the_o dean_n hold_v that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o the_o gross_a ignorance_n he_o construe_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v a_o act_n of_o the_o will_n by_o mutual_a consciousness_n which_o be_v a_o act_n of_o knowledge_n or_o as_o he_o whimsical_o call_v it_o of_o sensation_n and_o therefore_o let_v i_o tell_v this_o animadversion_n anti-nicene_a quadrigesimal_n chrysom_n paraphrases-man_n that_o the_o animadverter_n can_v construe_v the_o father_n and_o understand_v they_o too_o at_o much_o another_o rate_n than_o this_o come_v to_o provide_v that_o he_o read_v they_o in_o their_o own_o work_n but_o he_o confess_v that_o when_o he_o read_v they_o quote_v by_o he_o in_o his_o write_n he_o can_v construe_v they_o for_o solecism_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o for_o my_o part_n be_o so_o far_o from_o think_v this_o author_n fit_a to_o set_v up_o for_o a_o constru_a of_o the_o father_n and_o much_o less_o for_o a_o teacher_n of_o other_o to_o construe_v they_o that_o i_o shrewd_o suspect_v that_o it_o have_v be_v for_o want_n of_o a_o construing-book_n that_o he_o be_v no_o better_o acquaint_v with_o his_o grammar_n four_o the_o next_o thing_n which_o i_o think_v fit_a to_o take_v notice_n of_o be_v his_o frequent_a reproach_v the_o animadverter_n with_o the_o character_n of_o a_o wit_n though_o join_v with_o such_o ill-favoured_a epithet_n as_o his_o witless_a malice_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o degrade_v it_o with_o as_o p._n 9_o l._n 19_o that_o he_o be_v a_o spiteful_a wit_n and_o p._n 66._o i._n 21._o a_o wrangle_a wit_n and_o p._n 1._o l._n 6._o a_o satirical_a wit_n and_o the_o witty_a subtle_a good-natured_a animadverter_n p._n 38._o l._n 26._o etc._n etc._n though_o after_o all_o i_o think_v there_o be_v but_o very_o little_a wit_n show_v in_o make_v such_o charge_n however_o if_o wit_n be_v a_o reproach_n be_v it_o of_o what_o sort_n it_o will_v the_o animadverter_n be_v too_o just_a to_o return_v this_o reproach_n upon_o the_o defender_n and_o withal_o understand_v himself_o and_o what_o become_v he_o too_o well_o either_o to_o assume_v to_o himself_o or_o so_o much_o as_o to_o admit_v the_o character_n of_o a_o wit_n as_o at_o all_o due_a to_o he_o especial_o since_o he_o know_v that_o common_a sense_n a_o thing_n much_o
socinian_o of_o which_o number_n this_o author_n profess_v himself_o to_o be_v one_o and_o for_o this_o he_o will_v find_v dr._n sherlock_n reproach_v they_o in_o his_o vindication_n for_o have_v neither_o greek_a nor_o latin_a and_o thereupon_o very_o magisterial_o send_v they_o to_o school_n again_o i_o suppose_v in_o his_o own_o room_n likewise_o charge_v they_o with_o nonsense_n and_o call_v their_o opinion_n one_o of_o the_o most_o stupid_a senseless_a heresy_n that_o ever_o infest_a the_o christian_a church_n pref._n to_o vind._n at_o the_o end_n vow_v withal_o never_o to_o put_v up_o his_o goose-quill_n in_o this_o quarrel_n against_o they_o ibid._n and_o in_o short_a treat_v they_o with_o the_o utmost_a scorn_n that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o word_n to_o express_v whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o animadverter_n though_o he_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v of_o their_o opinion_n nor_o yet_o come_v up_o to_o the_o lambeth-strain_n in_o declare_v they_o the_o only_a scholar_n and_o disputant_n in_o the_o world_n and_o in_o comparison_n of_o who_o some_o of_o the_o most_o eminent_a upon_o both_o account_n that_o christendom_n ever_o have_v be_v but_o mere_a bungler_n yet_o with_o a_o due_a and_o just_a deference_n to_o truth_n 330._o he_o frank_o acknowledge_v their_o part_n and_o learning_n and_o assert_v the_o reputation_n of_o both_o against_o their_o belove_a dr._n sherlock_n who_o have_v with_o the_o utmost_a contumely_n and_o disdain_n vilify_v they_o all_o which_o consider_v the_o whole_a conduct_n of_o this_o spiteful_a usage_n of_o the_o animadverter_n by_o person_n even_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n consid._n p._n 12._o 2_o col._n l._n 41._o whole_o unprovoke_v by_o he_o be_v to_o i_o i_o must_v confess_v all_o riddle_n and_o i_o believe_v to_o all_o sober_a person_n beside_o nor_o can_v i_o see_v what_o tolerable_a account_n can_v be_v give_v of_o it_o but_o that_o they_o do_v all_o this_o by_o particular_a order_n and_o then_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o judge_v from_o who_o those_o order_n come_v which_o by_o such_o a_o mighty_a act_n of_o restrain_v grace_n put_v a_o stop_n to_o all_o socinian_n pen_n from_o write_v against_o such_o a_o bosome-favourite_n and_o turn_v they_o against_o that_o saucy_a church_n of_o england-animadverte_a for_o dare_v to_o assert_v the_o old_a doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n against_o the_o sentiment_n of_o those_o new_a don_n who_o may_v perhaps_o for_o fashion-sake_n own_o a_o trinity_n and_o some_o such_o other_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 11._o but_o according_a to_o mr._n dean_n excellent_a and_o never_o to_o be_v forget_v word_n not_o perfect_o in_o she_o own_o way_n now_o as_o to_o the_o argument_n debate_v in_o the_o animadversion_n the_o grand_a charge_n this_o considerer_n bring_v against_o the_o animadverter_n be_v that_o he_o make_v the_o three_o divine_a person_n in_o the_o bless_a trinity_n only_o three_o different_a posture_n of_o the_o godhead_n consid._n p._n 22._o col._n 1._o l._n 4._o repeat_v the_o same_o objection_n again_o and_o again_o that_o none_o may_v mistake_v he_o but_o be_v this_o fair_a deal_n in_o disputation_n or_o a_o just_a and_o true_a representation_n of_o the_o animadverter_n assertion_n he_o assert_v indeed_o that_o as_o posture_n and_o figure_n be_v modes_n affect_v the_o body_n without_o superad_v any_o new_a entity_n proper_o so_o call_v to_o it_o so_o a_o spirit_n whether_o finite_a or_o infinite_a may_v have_v its_o proper_a modes_n also_o affect_v it_o suitable_o to_o its_o particular_a nature_n without_o superad_v to_o it_o any_o new_a entity_n or_o be_v distinct_a from_o it_o for_o since_o the_o general_n nature_n of_o a_o mode_n consist_v only_o in_o this_o viz._n that_o it_o determine_v a_o be_v in_o itself_o absolute_a and_o undetermined_a to_o some_o certain_a state_n or_o condition_n without_o superad_v to_o it_o any_o such_o new_a distinct_a entity_n as_o we_o have_v mention_v i_o will_v glad_o know_v why_o there_o may_v not_o be_v a_o agreement_n and_o analogy_n in_o this_o general_a nature_n of_o a_o mode_n between_o such_o particular_a modes_n as_o do_v yet_o otherwise_o upon_o their_o proper_a account_n vast_o and_o infinite_o differ_v from_o one_o another_o as_o the_o modes_n of_o a_o infinite_a uncreate_v be_v and_o the_o modes_n of_o all_o finite_a create_v nature_n must_v needs_o do_v why_o i_o say_v these_o notwithstanding_o their_o peculiar_a difference_n may_v not_o agree_v as_o analogous_n in_o the_o general_a nature_n of_o a_o mode_n as_o well_o as_o a_o infinite_a and_o a_o finite_a substance_n do_v agree_v in_o the_o general_n nature_n of_o substance_n let_v any_o one_o by_o some_o solid_a reason_n prove_v but_o beside_o this_o the_o animadverter_n affirm_v also_o that_o the_o personal_a modes_n belong_v to_o the_o deity_n be_v of_o that_o peculiar_a kind_n as_o to_o affect_v it_o eternal_o necessary_o and_o inseparable_o though_o there_o be_v several_a modes_n of_o another_o kind_n belong_v to_o the_o say_a nature_n which_o do_v not_o so_o this_o i_o say_v and_o no_o more_o be_v the_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o the_o animadverter_n concern_v the_o divine_a modes_n which_o be_v so_o utter_o uncapable_a of_o the_o representation_n make_v of_o it_o by_o this_o considerer_n that_o though_o he_o be_v please_v to_o sport_n himself_o with_o a_o thing_n by_o no_o mean_n fit_a to_o be_v sport_v with_o yet_o i_o be_o confident_a in_o the_o present_a case_n his_o own_o judgement_n will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o believe_v his_o own_o word_n but_o he_o be_v for_o put_v the_o whole_a dispute_n to_o a_o short_a issue_n if_o he_o will_v say_v and_o hold_v by_o the_o decision_n of_o this_o one_o question_n to_o which_o he_o say_v if_o the_o animadverter_n will_v give_v a_o clear_a and_o categorical_a answer_n it_o will_v appear_v to_o all_o man_n that_o either_o he_o fall_v in_o with_o dr._n sherlock_n and_o the_o tritheist_n or_o with_o the_o socinian_o and_o the_o question_n be_v this_o whether_o there_o be_v in_o god_n three_o distinct_a all_o know_v almighty_a understanding_n will_n and_o energy_n as_o there_o be_v three_o distinct_a person_n or_o whether_o the_o three_o person_n have_v but_o one_o only_a selfsame_a understand_a will_n and_o energy_n as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o selfsame_a substance_n in_o number_n consider_v p._n 24._o col._n 2._o l._n 25._o to_o which_o i_o answer_v and_o that_o as_o categorical_o as_o he_o can_v desire_v first_o that_o there_o be_v not_o three_o distinct_a infinite_a understand_n etc._n etc._n in_o god_n as_o there_o be_v three_o person_n and_o that_o to_o assert_v that_o there_o be_v be_v as_o arrant_a tritheism_n as_o any_o that_o dr._n sherlock_n be_v guilty_a of_o and_o great_a there_o can_v well_o be_v second_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o numerical_a infinite_a understanding_n in_o god_n or_o in_o the_o three_o person_n but_o then_o i_o affirm_v withal_o that_o this_o one_o numerical_a infinite_a understanding_n have_v three_o distinct_a way_n of_o subsist_v according_a to_o which_o it_o subsist_v distinct_o and_o different_o in_o each_o of_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n for_o still_o three_o distinct_a infinite_a understand_n and_o one_o infinite_a understanding_n subsist_v after_o three_o distinct_a way_n or_o mode_n be_v two_o vast_o different_a hypothesis_n and_o if_o by_o this_o latter_a the_o animadverter_n fall_v in_o with_o the_o socinian_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o socinian_o must_v also_o fall_v in_o with_o he_o which_o i_o shall_v be_v very_o glad_a to_o find_v for_o i_o be_o sure_a it_o be_v the_o receive_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o which_o the_o animadverter_n have_v all_o along_o contend_v for_o and_o this_o very_a man_n with_o so_o much_o spite_n and_o personal_a reflection_n beyond_o all_o that_o i_o ever_o meet_v with_o have_v oppose_v and_o revile_v however_o i_o have_v answer_v he_o civil_o which_o be_v a_o way_n of_o answer_v which_o he_o seem_v a_o stranger_n to_o but_o to_o pass_v to_o the_o main_a business_n of_o his_o paper_n which_o be_v to_o expose_v and_o ridicule_n the_o animadverter_n as_o much_o as_o in_o so_o small_a a_o compass_n he_o can_v the_o first_o instance_n of_o his_o spleen_n against_o he_o though_o i_o think_v very_o little_o savour_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o gentleman_n be_v his_o express_v a_o grudge_n at_o the_o very_a support_n and_o maintenance_n which_o the_o animadverter_n have_v from_o the_o church_n tell_v he_o that_o he_o be_v full_a and_o even_o overflow_v with_o the_o blessing_n of_o his_o holy_a mother_n consid._n p._n 20._o col._n 1._o l._n 36._o and_o so_o much_o i_o hope_v i_o may_v say_v in_o the_o animadverter_n behalf_n that_o if_o he_o do_v indeed_o overflow_v there_o be_v many_o about_o he_o who_o find_v themselves_o the_o better_a for_o it_o though_o yet_o i_o know_v several_a in_o